The lack of Sidemen content on here is a crime đđ
Sidemen 9 years of us! Grateful for all the love and support, always đ
Read later list!!!
[29.8k] Pairing | Luke Hughes x afab!reader Summary | if y/n knew how their friendship would play out, she wouldâve never spoken to Luke in the first place. Now she finds herself in a game of cat and mouse except sheâs ready to surrender. But heâs not. Warnings | 18+ smut, angst, childhood friends to lovers, swearing, underage drinking, dry humping, choking, making out, praise kink, size kink, fingering, oral (f & m receiving), very creepy behaviour towards y/n, protected sex Authors Note | slow burning again. Covid also never happened. This is a work of fiction, please remember that my dudes ⍠love lost - mac miller [small worlds masterlist]
The house next door to the L/nâs had been vacant for six years after they moved to the lake until the Hughesâ moved in with their three boys. To say the l/ns were relieved to have neighbours finally would be a significant understatement, they were running straight to the Hughesâ front door with offerings of freshly baked cookies and a two-year-old y/n tucked in their arms. It started a beautiful friendship between families, but temperamental summers when the Hughesâ would return to the lake.Â
When y/n and Luke first met, they had been no older than a couple of five-year-olds with faces slathered in sun cream and the highest peak of curiosity in the world. She and her father had been seconds away from taking their boat out onto the lake, a bow-seated bowrider that most of the lake's inhabitants owned, but to the Hughes boys next door, it was the coolest thing theyâd seen. Before they knew it, Jim was dragged across the docks by Jack, Quinn keeping up with Luke behind them. Y/nâs dad stood up, placing his hands on his hips in a typical dad manner, chuckling while y/n snapped her head around to face the docks.Â
âApologies about him,â Jim smiled, referring to his middle sonâs enthusiasm. Quinn and Luke stayed tucked into Jimâs sides, âHeâs got far too much energy.â
âHeâs all right, anything I can do for you?â her dad asked. Y/nâs eyes jumped between all three boys, she knew theyâd lived next door during the summer for years, but sheâd never really spoken to them, Quinn was nine, and that was scary enough, not that he looked scary with his brown hair sticking out from under his cap and gentle eyes. Jack was a dirty-blond, eight-year-old ball of energy with a constant smile on his face, she heard him in his garden all the time. Luke was the shyest, but he had the cheesiest grin out of them all.Â
âEllen and I are about to head off to view a boat, actually. I was wondering if it would be possible for you to take the boys out with you? Iâm hoping itâll get them used to the waters.â
Y/n perked up, looking back at her dad and then back at the boys buzzing on their toes, eyes glowing under the sun, and she held her tiny hand out towards Luke, âYeah! Come, come!âÂ
It was safe to say that after a full day of exploring the lake, listening to the boys talk about hockey, reminding them to sit still, her father had never been more grateful to only have two children, one being a daughter who seemed to love bossing Jack (specifically) around.Â
That was how the two families managed to occupy the children as rambunctious kids. Shuffling them between each other, introducing various activities from each other's lives just to cure their boredom and get them befriended. The boat trip had been such a success that Jack had insisted they teach y/n mini sticks, her brother was only two and still far more interested in what toys he could chew on. So, they did just that, Quinn gently teaching the rules and watching over the younger ones, especially when Jack got really into it. But it was Luke whoâd stick to her like glue, choosing her as his teammate every time, whacking his brothers if they hurt y/n (which they giggled about, planning to bring it up later). Â
Another day when the weather was particularly calm, Ellen and Mr. L/n took the children paddleboarding, Jack and Quinn picking it up rather quickly, able to stand on their feet when both used the board together. That didnât last long when Jack supposedly elbowed Quinn in the back, resulting in the eldest Hughes shoving Jack into the water, which then meant the board capsized and both boys became drenched. Y/n and Luke giggled, opting to sit on their board cross-legged and facing each other, talking about their favourite TV shows and school stories. Ellen thought it was a sweet sight, her little Luke warming up to someone, having a refuge from Toronto, someone of his own so he wouldnât be confined to his brothers all the time. Not that that was a bad thing, but the other two boys had people at the lake they knew, their own friends and he seemed to adore her, just as she adored him the same.Â
Every year the nearby town held a carnival that featured rides, food stalls, almost impossible games and the publicâs favourite, the firework display. The one night a summer when everyone seemed to spring to life, families, couples, and friends, all came together for the memories. Strings of fairy lights hanging around the walkways, colourful, flashing stalls and rides with music drowning out under the crowdâs chatter and the floods of people making it too easy to get lost in. It was one night Luke in particular would never forget, fear shook him to his core seeing how busy the walkways were, and how big the world was and he concluded that if he was scared, y/n mustâve been too.
Both families attended together with a chain of their children clinging to them, weaving in and out of people just to reach a good spot for the fireworks. Quinn hated it the most, somehow, he had been roped into getting Jack through (who made it his goal to play every game possible), clutching his wrist while Jack complained about his grip and that he was pulling him too fast. Ellen guided Luke through, and Lukeâs hand held y/nâs in a vice grip, as tight as he could for a child. He couldnât look at her though, his cheeks burned pink the whole time and he concentrated too hard on getting away from the crowd, y/n with him. He thought heâd cry if he lost her.Â
It was then that Luke experienced butterflies for the first time. The moment they reached the fireworks spot, both families huddled together, ear defenders ready in case they got frightened by popping and squealing. But not Luke and y/n, the only thing clutched in their hands were each other. The comfort of another was all it took to rid the fear, children donât seem to mind if their hands are clammy, they held each other's hand as the fireworks lit up the sky in beautiful shades of reds, oranges, yellows in bouquets and whistles to willows and cackles, the first display theyâd remember and have reflect in their beady eyes of awe. He squeezed her hand, turning his head to search for any fear in her face but she gazed back at him, lips grinning as his blond curls bounced in the breeze. They never let go, even when they didnât need to hold each other anymore.
Crickets chirped throughout her garden, fairy lights running along the fence illuminating ever so slightly in the dark. No chatter from the docks, lights in the house absent and the time hitting midnight on the dot when young voices, terrible at whispering broke through the silence.Â
âLuke, move over!â she kicked his leg, attempting to roll away from the box of board games next to her.
âI canât, the wall is there!â Luke protested, rolling into y/n, trying to shove her back to her side.Â
Group sleepovers are the pinnacle of good times but also the cause of a war. Y/n had a treehouse in her garden before she was born, her dad had built it after having fond memories from his childhood when he had one. Her mother suggested she invite the Hughes boys over one night since they werenât far, and the treehouse had board games and cushions in there anyway, all they needed were sleeping bags and roll mats and they were set and wouldnât be disturbed, as long as they closed the door.Â
It wasnât large, a squeeze, in fact, the four top-to-tailing (Luke and y/n together in the smaller section, Quinn and Jack in the larger where there wasnât a big box) but it was cosy and as long as Jack kept his arms and legs in his sleeping bag, everyone would be happy. Except he didnât. Just before they were about to fall asleep, Quinn was awoken by a Skittle bouncing off his head and rattling against the wood. He ignored it until another hit him. Then a Skittle hit Jack, who threw one at y/n and Jack failed to stifle his giggles until someone smacked him with a pillow. Y/n grinned, watching the boy pout but grab his own and hit Quinn, whose eyebrows couldnât have knitted any further into his forehead as he, with a stronger momentum, swung around and whacked Jack clean around the face.Â
âOh Lu~â she chimed, watching him shield himself with his own pillow. She hit him but softer than sheâd hit Jack and the four fell into a pattern of giggles and pillow swinging, burning all that pent-up energy children had. It was moments like those that brought the fondest memories to people, the ones that stuck with people forever and no matter how much time passes, the memory stays in the very place where it all happened. Always. People never forget things that made them laugh until their stomachs ached, even if they did get scolded in the morning for going to sleep too late or being too noisy. The memory never fades. Everything always stays.
When Luke was eleven, his family moved officially to Michigan, on the opposite side of the lake. The town separated them, albeit not far, he still wished he could live next to her all the time, but that wouldâve taken the magic out of the vacation home. She was still the girl next door but now theyâd get to see each other every day instead of once a year, he could invite her over to his, hang out on the weekends, after school, and visit all the places she used to talk about. He could see his best friend all the time.
Y/n hadnât known about the Hughesâ move. Of course, her parents told her they were moving out of Toronto but where to be a guessing game. Out of all places, it was at school she discovered theyâd moved to Michigan when the locker next to hers had been given a new lock. She closed her locker door and turned to take her leave for class until she came face to face with Luke Hughes and his bright blond curls, standing next to her just as awestruck as she was. They broke into smiles, arms thrown around shoulders and faces buried into necks, hugging until the final warning bell rang.
If you had asked Luke at the time if he liked y/n, he wouldâve rejected the idea profusely out of embarrassment, but even years on, he still attached himself to her at the hip. He didnât know what love felt like, or what a crush felt like at that age, but he did know that he always felt this warm sensation in his chest when he was around her, like flowers blooming and he couldnât help but smile and tune the rest of the world out when she spoke. Heâd always ask her for homework help, even if he knew the answers, he just wanted to hear her talk. If her friends received compliments and gifts from other boys, heâd provide her with them. When she didnât have a partner, sheâd find him. When she cried, she cried into him, when heâd lose his temper, she was his serenity.Â
He remembered the first time she bawled her eyes out to him, clear as day and the first time heâd seen her vulnerable. He had been flustered through and through, never having a girl throw herself into him and nuzzle into his neck the way she did, tears soaking his hoodieâs collar and arms winding around his torso tight. He rubbed her back timidly, copying what his dad did when his mum was upset and let her cry at their lockers, the hallway scarce of anyone else but her muffled sobs and his hammering heartbeat.Â
âWhatâs wrong?â he whispered, his stomach sinking.
Y/n sniffed, turning her head and pressing her ear to his shoulder, avoiding his gaze, âItâs stupid.â
âWell, itâs not if youâre crying.âÂ
âBasically, Mark C had this list that ranked most pretty to least pretty out of me and my friends and he and his friends put me at the bottom and itâs stupid because it doesnât do anything but then he said that âthereâs always an ugly oneâ. Jenny found it and tore it up.â She babbled, tears soaking his hoodie, but he didnât mind. He just held her tighter, stroking her back until sheâd cried herself dry.
âHeâs such a jerk, I think youâre the prettiest, so he was wrong anyway.â Luke, fuelled by a bitter taste in his mouth, hadnât thought through what he had said or the weight of it and spoke from his mind. Hearing that a boy thought she was pretty and openly admitted it without shame or fear exiled any sort of misery from her. Somehow, and she didnât understand why at that age, it meant everything that it came from Luke. Luke whoâd grown up with her and seen her worst moments already (like horrifically sunburnt).Â
She squeezed him. He wasnât the kind of guy to throw around compliments or comments, he was a thinker, just like his oldest brother.
âDo you wanna come over? We can watch movies and Iâm sure we can drop you home.â He asked, his voice soft. She pulled back, hands fisting his hoodie, eyes sore and puffy and Luke felt his heart shatter at the sight of her sadness. She nodded eagerly, failing to contain the smile that crept onto her lips. She couldnât help it, Luke just did that, and had that effect on her.
It was just a movie to make y/n feel better, but Luke being the youngest of three meant he fell victim to relentless teasing from his brothers the moment he got home. With bags dumped in the hallway, he and y/n made it to the large living room that opened into the dining room on the right-hand side which overlooked sliding doors into the garden, a breakfast bar dividing the kitchen and dining. Jackâs eyes lit up, first, engulfing her into a bear hug and then wiggling his eyebrows at Luke. Quinn simply ruffled both their hair and took his seat on one of the sofas, engrossed in his phone.Â
âWoah, look at Lukey bringing a girl home, we only got here a week ago an-â Jack started announcing but Ellen soon ushered him quietly, guiding Luke and y/n into the living room. She apologised for the mess, they had only recently moved in and there was still a lot of decorating to complete. The basics were down, sofas, TV above the fireplace, and dining table in the dining room but the place lacked photos and other miscellaneous decor for now.Â
âWhat do you wanna watch, Lu?â she curled up on the sofa, tucking herself into the armrest. Luke sat next to her, an awkward distance between them.
âYou choose, I would pick Harry Potter, obviously.â He slumped into the backrest so his feet could reach the coffee table, just about.
âHarry Potterâs good, put that on.â Luke did, loading up Netflix and hitting play. He wanted to do something, cut the awkward air between the two of them but she seemed happy curled up in the corner, but he imagined her cuddled into him instead. Y/n burned to lean into Luke, bathe in his embrace again, the warmth of sitting close to someone and perhaps she would have if Quinn left the room. It wasnât like he was paying attention to them, so she readjusted and shuffled closer to Luke, butterflies flittering in her stomach as she closed that awkward gap between the two of them. Luke glanced over to Quinn, but quickly turned back to her and sat up straight, turning his body into hers in return and putting his attention back onto the film.Â
They hadnât made it halfway through the film when they fell asleep, Quinn too. Y/nâs head lay on Lukeâs shoulder, his head leaning on hers. It was tough work surviving a day of school, clearly, but at least they were comfortable. The whole house fell into a silence, if a pin were to drop, the rattling against the floor would echo. When Jack emerged from his room, he genuinely thought heâd been home alone the whole time and crept down the stairs, flinching when he accidentally kicked a hockey glove to the bottom. He hung a left into the living room, catching sight of Quinn knocked out with his hood pulled over his head and Luke and y/n cuddled together, Harry Potter still playing on the TV. He could have woken Quinn, he could have woken Luke and teased him red, but he fumbled in his pocket for his phone, snapped a photo of his little brother and scooted around the house to find Ellen as if he had a rare treasure to show her. Sometimes siblings arenât all that bad.Â
The summer of twenty-fifteen worked slightly differently than either family were used to. The l/nâs were used to having an eleven-year-old and an eight-year-old, with the additional two teenagers and Luke next door but now Jack was allowed to bring his friends Trevor and Cole. That was four teenagers, two pre-teens and a child, the Hughesâ now with two cars on their drive and double the noise level. Jackâs friends werenât trouble, though. Trevor was like Jack, loud and full of spirit while Cole was on the quieter side, yet still as adventurous as the other two. When Jim had told the l/nâs the situation, y/nâs parent's souls were sucked straight from their bodies, how were they supposed to entertain that many kids?Â
One tradition that hadnât changed was the carnival. That still stayed but the world wasnât so big to them anymore. The fairy lights stayed, the food and game stalls were still the same, the rides had been refurbished and chatter still muffled the music. They had the strength to move through the crowds on their own now, recognise each other amongst the people and knew exactly where their meeting point was. Quinn was relieved he didnât have to babysit Jack anymore, he met up with his friend Brady before the firework display. Jack, Trevor and Cole played every game they could afford with brotherly competitiveness raging through them and Luke still held her hand above it all. Weaving through bodies, hand clasped in his, she followed him with every ounce of trust she had, feeling a spark surge between them and watching his ears tint pink when she squeezed. When theyâd arrived at the spot, the parents were already huddled together, Jack and his musketeers arriving shortly after with various prizes hanging around their necks and stuffed under their arms and Quinn arrived last. They werenât huddled as close as they all had been in previous years, the little groups seeming to form their own huddles and Luke and y/n were included in that pattern, standing slightly to the side, almost in their own world.Â
Spinners of blues, glitters of whites and brocades of purples painted the inky sky in tune with the song that played in the background, following every beat almost perfectly. Their hands became warm in each other's hold, almost too warm but letting go wouldâve felt wrong and awkward, especially since the electric feeling felt too good. Maybe they were too old to be holding hands now, there wasnât much of a point anymore but perhaps they felt like it was all they had left of the innocence of childhood before school got harder, friendships got messier and before everyone started changing. Luke peered over at her, smitten by the way the fireworks always brought a smile to her face. She had such a lovely smile, the kind where her eyes crinkled in the corners, and she was confident about showing teeth. A burst of adrenaline shot through him, and images of couples heâd seen around flashed through his mind and maybe he would regret it, maybe he would burn hotter than his sunburn but at least he could say he tried.Â
With a hitched breath, Luke placed a sweet, quick kiss on her cheek before turning back to the sky above as if heâd done nothing at all. Her eyes widened and her head whipped around to look at him, confirming as if she hadnât been dreaming and the way he smiled victoriously gave her every answer to her questions.Â
âLuke!â he flinched at his name, eyes wide, his worst fear hitting him like a brick; did someone see that? Was he about to be yelled at for kissing a girlâs cheek? Is Jack or Quinn going to chirp him for the rest of his life about it? He sheepishly turned towards his family, only to have relief wash over him when it was just Ellen calling him and y/n over.Â
âI want a photo of you and your brothers,â Ellen called, and he and y/n shuffled over, hearts thumping in their chests with cheeky smiles that kept a secret only they would ever know.Â
Quinn, Jack and Luke stood together, Luke in the middle wearing his University of Michigan fleece (which he wasnât sure who it actually belonged to), Quinn on one side, hands tucked into the sleeves of his grey hoodie and Jack on the other, who, for reasons unknown, decided to don an all-burgundy jacket and beanie in the middle of summer. Neither of the boys smiled, more so due to being forced into a photo with everyone else watching and giggling at them but unknown to them at the time, that photo would be hung up on their staircase and be one of the favourites.Â
The problem with growing up is that the big world starts to become smaller and more enclosed. You learn and feel new things that you never thought existed. Unfortunately, the group found out the hard way that things change. The ladder on y/nâs treehouse had rotted over the winter, but her father replaced it with a staircase instead, for ease but she thought it looked cooler that way. It also made getting the mugs of hot chocolate into the treehouse easier than it would have been. But because everyone had grown, and theyâd gained two extra bodies, it meant the inside was even more of a squeeze than before, even after replacing the large box of board games with a small cabinet instead. Top-to-tailing once again, Jack, Cole and Trevor on one end with Quinn, Luke and y/n on the other, but this time Jack was kept awake by Trevorâs snoring. He should have expected it really, it was usually him keeping everyone up with his antics, but he loathed how everyone else managed to fall asleep but him, but he hated more that if he dared wake anyone, heâd be sleeping outside.Â
He couldnât blame everyone for being out cold, theyâd spent the afternoon making friendship bracelets, Luke and y/n giving each other matching blue ones that he just knew would become the most prized possessions with the way their eyes lit up. Jack may have been loud and chatty, but he observed his brothers intensely and learned vicariously and what he figured out was that his little brother was utterly obsessed with this girl he desperately tried sitting closer and closer to. Luke even blew on her hot chocolate, the way Quinn used to do for him. To think that an eleven-year-old made bolder moves than he did. Quinn had told him to lay off Luke, let him be enamoured and that it was sweet to watch him break out of his comfort zone. Of course, the eldest knew exactly what it was like to feel so tucked away in your shell all the time, so if anyone was rooting for Luke and y/n, it was Quinn.Â
The air around her slowly warmed, her shivering stopping and a hot breath fanning across her pillow. Opening her eyes a crack, Lukeâs curls fell in front of his eyes, sleeping bag zipped to his lips and he shuffled closer to her. If this was his way of cuddling, she accepted it immediately, shuffling closer until foreheads almost touched.
âGoodnight, y/n.â he whispered.
âGoodnight, Lu.â
Jack vaulted over the sofa, clutching the diary to his chest and manically laughing as Luke chased him desperately, with sheer panic in his eyes and a face redder than Coleâs sunburn. Luke had never felt so hot in his life, never wanted the ground to swallow him up more. He wished heâd never let Jack in his room, he wished heâd been more careful and tidied his room when he was asked because everything from that point further could have been prevented.Â
âCâmon Jack! Give it back!â Luke whined, lunging at his brother, who dodged him. âYou canât tell me you havenât thought it too!â
âIt doesnât matter if Iâve thought it, you wrote it down!â Jack teased, opening the diary above his head to read more of the paragraphs. More of Lukeâs deepest secrets. âI think y/nâs the prettiest girl in my grade and even the world, I like her smile a lot and she makes me feel all tingly when she laughs.âÂ
âShut up! Muuuum!âÂ
Jack eventually handed the diary back, his laughing taunting Luke as this was now something that would hang over him for the rest of his life, be brought up every summer until the end of time and he begged the universes and any deity out there that Jack didnât spill the secret. He was awful at keeping secrets. He and y/n were best friends. She didnât even feel the same anyway, or at least he thought but, if he was lucky, perhaps took the risk, even just once, it could work out. What was the worst that could happen?
âLukey and y/n sitting in a tree, k-i-s-s-i-n-g!â Jack sang, eventually ending the tune with kissing noises as Luke's face grew redder and redder. If he could hit him with no consequences, he wouldâve hit him hundreds of times, he wished he was big enough to cross-check him hard next time they were on ice.Â
âShut up!â Luke yelled and shoved him, but Jack repeated the song, âMum! Tell him to stop!âÂ
âYour face is so red! You do think she's pretty! Wait âtil the otherâs hear this!âÂ
âJack, stoooop!â
Jack grinned like a menace, running away through the sliding doors and through the yard towards the dock, âQUINN! Luke has a crush on y/n!â
To Jack, it was harmless, brotherly teasing. Theyâd make up, move on and forget about it. They couldnât do anything anyway, Jim and Ellen would scold him (or Quinn) for messing with Luke if they continued, and y/n would find out and everything would be ruined. So, it became a Hughes secret, and everyone would let Luke pine himself to death and decide if he wanted to make a move or not. And Lukeâs nerves exploded. His mind raced and emotions tangled into a knot. He was still a growing boy, he didnât know anything, and he was just about to begin middle school and after that high school where y/n would likely and undoubtedly make new friends, like other boys and heâd fade into the distance as nothing but the boy next door. If anyone were to have their heart broken it would be him, and heâd do everything to ensure that never happened.
When you start high school as a freshman, you don this mentality that youâre a lot older than you are. Perhaps itâs because youâre in a larger school with kids a year to four years older than you are, youâre all mature now. You dress better, follow trends, are influenced by the people around you and the media, and develop into your own person and your classes are more challenging. Yet, there are twice as many people, twice as many judging eyes, people you know and others youâve never seen before. People openly tell you your flaws, force you into a shell and all the rumours brainwash the consensus and nobody knows whatâs real and whatâs not, if thereâs a correct way to wear something, enjoy something, who was in your league and who was far out.Â
But it was also a clean slate for most. When Luke and y/n started high school, their friendships hadnât merged like they used to. Luke found his crowd, like-minded boys who enjoyed sports and finding ways to cure teenage boredom and y/n found hers, a mix of different personalities that found common interests out of the blue. The differing schedules and groups pulled them apart more than they had liked, only sharing two classes in the end and Luke despised whoever made their timetables. Sheâd pout when they compared schedules, a violent urge to cry knowing she wouldnât see his smile and curly hair every day, wouldnât be able to find him easily for a hug when she needed it, and wouldn't have him by her side anymore. When sheâd looked back up at him, with glossy eyes, his stomach dropped, and he knew exactly how she felt. He opened his arms and let her bury her face into his chest, arms winding around her, and they both mourned the loss of being two peas in a pod as dramatically as angsty teenagers would.
He did his best to see her at her locker, leaving cute little notes through the vents with hearts doodled under the message. He smiled and talked to her in the halls, they hung out after school when they could, he glared at anyone who dared talk shit about her and they hugged whenever one had a bad day, Luke hanging on longer, always. But as heâd feared, she had shown interest in other boys like his efforts had been wasted, and other boys had reciprocated but for some reason when they left cute notes, it was romantic, not that led to anything. But seeing the real world lit the fire under him, he needed to be a go-getter now, do something.
Nothing sucked at the lake though. There was no competition at the lake, no interruptions and he had the whole summer to make a singular move, or at least drop a hint. That was his one goal, drop y/n a hint that he liked her. She was a smart girl; sheâd catch on but if she accepted it was an entirely different anxiety. Heâd watched Jack make moves on girls before, it wasnât that hard, surely. All you had to do was just go for it. And he would if his nerves didnât eat him alive like vultures. This was his best friend he liked; heâd cry like a baby if she rejected him but hate himself for ruining something precious more.Â
Michigan could get hot during the summer, a blazing hot sometimes where the UV was high enough that thirty minutes outside, youâd feel that burning sensation along your skin. All those years ago, Jim and Ellen had bought that boat they viewed, it had sat identically to the l/nâs on the dock until Quinn had been old enough to drive it himself and take his brothers and friends out on the lake. Well, it was more like Jackâs friends as, for another year, Trevor and Cole had tagged along for their lake house getaway.
Luke had no problem with Trevor and Cole and quite liked them as people. So did y/n, maybe a bit more than the youngest Hughes liked. Y/n sat opposite them and Jack on the boat, donning her new bikini and sunglasses she begged her parents for since she wasnât a kid anymore. Thank the heavens for those sunglasses, if either of the two had caught her staring at them, she may have just jumped overboard because they looked divine. Trevor with his flowing hair, always perfect no matter what direction the wind blew and tanned skin that glowed in the sun, immaculate humour that made anyone laugh. Cole who was the embodiment of the sun and so soft-spoken, shoulders broad with inviting arms. The boys in her grade werenât like them, hadnât grown into their features yet, and still had awful haircuts but not Trevor and Cole. They worked out, proudly sitting shirtless and flashing their six-packs off to the poor, fumbling girl in front of them. Her friends would have killed to be there, these guys were so much hotter than the ones she knew, but also so far out of reach that all she could do was admire them.Â
Jack elbowed Trevor, subtly gesturing over to a zoned-out y/n with a playful smirk on his face. Catching onto his hint, he tensed just to watch y/n look away, attempting to play it off. The older boys chuckled, Luke sending a stabbing glare towards Jack. Sheâd been caught, been too sloppy and now they knew she was staring. How embarrassing. Luke shuffled closer to her, thighs pressing together as he slung his arm over the back of her seat, just as heâd seen Jack do before.
âCâmon, dude, uncool.â Luke scolded, irritation bubbling in his chest as his brother and friends laughed until they moved to the seats at the front of the boat, likely intending to get Quinn to stop so they could jump in the water. He wanted her to look at him the same way, desperately. He also worked out regularly, grew out his curls the way she liked them, and wore the clothes she said looked good on him so what was so much better about them than him? What was he doing wrong?Â
Heat flushed up the back of y/nâs neck, tingles jolting through her as their skins touched softly. His arm around her felt secure like it was meant to be there and suddenly the embarrassment faded. She glanced at him from the corner of her eye, listening to Luke mumble something under his breath. God was he cute when he pouted, cute that heâd stood up for her once again. He was taller, more confident, attentive, and wearing the clothes she loved on him, heâd listened when she rinsed his last haircut, completely warmed up to her presence, talking all the time with her about anything, going everywhere with her. Luke was her anchor. She leaned into his side and tucked herself into him, his muscles relaxing underneath her touch, and he hesitantly rested his head against hers, shutting the surrounding world out as they bathed in each other's company.
The sun gracefully set into slumber, painting the sky with gradients of oranges to yellows over the lake and the back gardens. Y/nâs legs dangled over the porch of her treehouse, facing out towards the lake and feeling the breeze through her hair, a hot chocolate still warm cupped in her hands. It was peaceful up there, next door was too loud, Jack throwing some party while Jim and Ellen refuged in her living room, chattering with her parents about all the children and presumably the Hughes boysâ NHL drafting. Her parents were hockey fans, but neither child played the sport, not seriously at least, but she knew it was Lukeâs world and because of that, she made sure to attend his games when she could.
Lukeâs footsteps thumped on the wood of the platform, and he took a seat next to y/n, swinging his legs back and forth over the edge. Jackâs party had become too loud to bear, and he felt the sweat radiate off the bodies heâd weaved through to leave the house, deterring him from wanting to join in. Besides, he didnât want to be at the scene of the crime when Ellen and Jim found a broken pool cue in the basement, or a giant stain on the rug in the living room.Â
âWhat are you doing up here?â she asked, smiling at him. Of course, she knew, but she loved seeing him smile.
âWanted to see my favourite person, is that wrong?â Lukeâs shoulders bounced when he chuckled. Something she loved about him was that when he laughed, he laughed with his body, shoulders bouncing, head thrown back, eyes squeezed shut, sometimes when he laughed really hard, heâd lean into her.Â
âMmm, nooo, I guess not. Just thought youâd be down there,â she gestured her head towards his house, âgetting the party experience for when you make it with the big dogs.â
He screwed his face up, âThere is the last place I wanna be right now. Itâs a disaster and I donât wanna be roped in with the blame. Plus, Jackâs been making out with a girl for an hour and every corner I took they were literally there, so gross. And Quinnâs at Bradyâs. Would rather be here with you.â
âWell, arenât you a cutie pie,â she teased. Lukeâs ears tinted pink and she raised her mug towards him. âWant a sip?â
Without a word, his lips pressed to the mug, sipping the lukewarm hot chocolate which was more marshmallow than liquid. He wiped the corners of his mouth with his sleeve, watching her lips meet the exact spot his did. His stomach fluttered at the sight, the orange hues cascading over the two in perfect timing. She lookedâŚbeautiful.Â
They fell silent for a moment, attention drawn next door as a group of guys cheered over a beer pong win, jumping into each other and loudly claiming that the winning shots were for the girls watching. They imagined that it was them, at some place in the future, at a party with their friends where they all played drinking games, and it was normal to express such things openly. Where everyone had grown out of their teenage features and minds, understanding the world a bit better and having fun was easier. Y/n knew all the girls that entered the Hughesâ house were pretty, and she admired the way they dressed and styled their hair, their confidence and no wonder the boys liked them.Â
âI canât wait to be like them one day, Lu.â She mumbled, placing her (now empty) mug to the side. âPretty and having fun like that, theyâre all so cool. My friendâs sister goes to college, and she tells the wildest stories, and how she met her boyfriend is insane.â
Lukeâs mouth dried, it was now or never, and he couldnât miss his chance again. Why were feelings so hard? Why couldnât she see herself from his eyes? Y/n placed her hands on the platform edge, fingers curling over the side, and he glanced at them with temptation burning through him. Be a go-getter, now or never, do something. He placed his hand on hers, fingers curling the same as hers did. It was an awkward way to hold someoneâs hand, sure, but you donât really think things through when your heart is pulsing in your ears, and you think youâre about to explode in adrenaline.Â
Y/n turned her head and looked at the heat on her hand, his larger one fully engulfing hers, âYou looked pretty today. You look pretty all the time. I told you that years ago. I like the way you smile, and I like your bravery, the way youâre not afraid to talk to people, that you bring comfort to people. There are lots of pretty things about you other than your face. And hairâŚand eyes.âÂ
Looking up at him, their eyes met, and he wasnât smiling. He was being real. Heâd seen straight through her once again and said exactly what she needed to hear. But the way he said it came straight from his heart, his eyes never wavering away from hers like heâd been trying hard to put up a confident front. His hand squeezed hers, the sunset lighting up the green in his eyes but not in a soul-staring way, they shimmered. His words flowed through her veins, echoing around her head and wrapped around her heart like a hug and no matter how hard she had tried to suppress it, maybe she liked him a lot. And heâd just confirmed that maybe, just maybe, he may have felt similar.Â
âLu,â she asked, his gaze softening at her voice, âdo you really think kissing is gross?â
He shook his head sheepishly, wetting his lips, âNoâŚI just donât know how to do it.â
âI can teach you,â she paused, eyes jumping to his lips and back to his eyeline, âIâve read a lot of romance books to have an idea.âÂ
His voice stammered, eyebrows raising as his chest became heavier, breathing deeper until he managed to spill the words out, âYou wanna kiss me?â
âYeah, likeâŚit wouldn't be weird because likeâŚweâre best friends and all soâŚif weâre gonna learn it may as well be with each other.â Y/n avoided his eyes, looking between his lips, chest and their hands on the decking. They were warm, a nice warm that felt secure, the contact made her stomach flutter because yes, she had thought about kissing him, what it would feel like, if it was acceptable, what he would think of her and if he wanted to kiss her too.Â
âYeah, itâs not weird if we kiss.â Luke piped up, hand leaving hers and fingers gently tilting her chin up to meet his eyes, âI wanna kiss you too.â
Y/n nodded lightly, confidence driving her to lean closer into him and the world fell silent. Luke short-circuited, he really should have asked his brothers for advice before agreeing but he wasnât going to be a coward when she was right there, her eyes fluttering closed, and he copied. His fingers slid to cup her cheek, tilting his head in the opposite direction while his heart pulsed rapidly, faster than hockey had ever made it beat. Their lips pressed together for a closed-mouth kiss, meeting tentatively and tasting the marshmallow remnants but a new kind of euphoria burned through them for those five seconds, an addicting one that when they pulled away with uncontrollable smiles, they leant back in for another, a passionate one that lasted a few seconds longer with more confidence as theyâd found comfort.Â
Pulling back with eyes fluttering open, Lukeâs hand covered herâs again, âAre you sure youâve never done that before?â he whispered, enamoured by the high he was left on. A high that urged him to kiss her again, and again and until they couldnât breathe.Â
âNow you know how to kiss someone.â She giggled, turning back to face the sunset as if it hadnât fazed her at all. No blush as if sheâd kissed someone a million times. Like it was empty.Â
And that was that. It ended as fast as it started and both fifteen-year-olds watched the sunset until the sky bled into ink and the stars rose, not a word between them. That painful desire to keep kissing her terrified Luke through to his bones. Her lack of reaction, lack of sparkle in her eyes gave him the sickening reality check that maybe it was just a kiss. That when the euphoria circled through them it only fuelled a fire in him. Had he not been clear enough when he explicitly said he wanted to kiss her? He needed to be braver, bolder. If she wasnât picking up on hints, heâd just need to spit it out, but not now. He could barely form a sentence as he processed the storm of emotions. Whatâs the worst that could happen anyway?
Y/n whipped her head back towards the sunset, a small smile settling on her lips to mask the twisting in her stomach. The kiss felt electric, joy running through her veins and Lukeâs lips on hers let a new kind of warmth flourish in her chest, one that made tingles of excitement spread through her. She could tell the kiss had him enamoured, he sat wide-eyed like sheâd hung the stars out, utterly infatuated theyâd just shared their first kisses. It wasnât like she hated it, that it didnât mean anything to her because it did, thereâs no one else in the world sheâd rather have her first kiss with. The problem was that it made her feel things. Things sheâd never felt before and she didnât know if she liked the kiss or if she liked Luke. She didnât know anything, and she couldnât risk hurting him out of her own confusion and stupidity.
Leaning up against his locker, half-listening to what his friends were talking about, Luke watched the two from across the hall, his tongue licking his top teeth as y/n laughed with the boy she was with. One year ago, he and y/n had kissed in her treehouse, and one year on he still thought about it. They hadnât brought it up since, it didnât matter anymore, it was only a kiss apparently. They continued their friendship like it always had been but every now and then theyâd stare at each other for a little bit too long and let the memory wash over them again.Â
But he still didn't like what he was watching, it felt like a festering wound in his body with the way she looked up at him with stars in her eyes. Gradually he clocked out of his friendâs conversation and tuned into y/n and mystery guyâs like a satellite. The hall wasnât too busy, most of the crowds retreating towards the stairs, so while their voices werenât clear, he caught the gist. It didnât mean he was happy about it, in fact the way he spoke to her as if she were stupid didnât quite sit with him right, how could she like him? Lukeâs glare only stiffened, burned holes through the guyâs head the more he swayed her with his compliments and smiles, God was it unbearable and Luke was at his wits end with it. Weeks he had seen the two together and his croaky, fifteen-year-old selfâs voice echoed, âbe a go-getterâ.Â
He pushed off his locker, weaving around the passing students and just as he was so close to interfering, he wished heâd never left at all. The world moved around him, but the volume never made it, a ringing in his ears as the words left her mouth easily.Â
Itâs a date, see you Saturday.
He huffed with a lump in his throat, stomach dropping and his heart bleeding out his chest and onto the linoleum, but his feet didnât move fast enough as by the time heâd processed what heâd seen, heard, his eyes met hers and he found himself approaching her. Even at sixteen, he towered over her, shoulder leaning against her locker with his hands in the pockets of his jeans, eyes glossing but holding back the tears.Â
âYou two seem friendly lately, not goinâ around finding my replacement, huh?â he half-joked, trying his best to put on his signature smirk.
Y/n folded her arms and raised an eyebrow, his eyes catching sight of the friendship bracelet he made her when they were kids, âStop it, weâre just talking. And nobody could replace you, Lulu. Youâll always be my number one bestie.âÂ
Bestie.
âSo, whereâs he taking you on Saturday? Not a walk in the woods, I hope. You know what happens there.â He didnât care, no, no, no he didnât. At least thatâs what he had tried to tell himself. He just needed to know she was safe, yeah. That was it.
âHeâs not gonna kill me, and if you must know, weâre going to the roller rink, he wants to be cute and teach me to skate.â She watched Luke cock an eyebrow; his smirk still glued to his lips as if to non-verbally ask her âReally? Does he not know you at all?â. âWhat? I tried to tell him I already knew but he insisted and like, heâs cute and he was trying so why not?â
The bell shrilled and crowds began shuffling. Luke raised his hands to surrender while she rolled her eyes, pushing him by the chest backwards towards their class as he chuckled at her, spinning around. His heart had officially been shattered to pieces; he wasnât even in the running. Heâd lost a love, but he still had his friend, but the part that stung was that he lost his first love to someone else. He had been too slow, a coward. Maybe it would have turned out differently if he hadnât agreed to kiss her in the first place. Maybe he should have said something in the treehouse. Seeing them together would only add more salt to the wound and he didnât think he could just get over that quickly, couldnât bear to see them in school together, it was like having an arrow labelled above his head labelling him as a loser.Â
âOkay, okay, Iâll leave you two at it then. Call me if you need anything.âÂ
Y/n stopped pushing him and walked close by his side, looping her arm around his and holding tight to not lose him amongst the crowd. Luke wished he could have enjoyed the affection, but it was different now. He was just a friend and how would her potential boyfriend feel about her clinging onto him? Would it be his fault? Oh God why was it so confusing.
One weekend. One date was all it took. Luke spent the whole weekend in his basement, shooting pucks and not caring if they hit the wall or the net, that wasnât the point, all just to clear his head and focus on something else. He started to hope his dad would yell at him for being too rough, it would give him something else to be upset about. After the puck slammed into the wall, he stood up straight to catch his breath. Hockey was supposed to channel his energy so why did his body feel so heavy still? His eyes burned hot, glazed over and he wiped the streaming tears with his sleeve. He was used to being on his own now, both his older brothers in the NHL and now his best friend had someone else. The one time he needed brotherly advice, comfort, to hear their voices the most, they couldnât be there, and a call wasnât the same as sitting on the porch roof watching the sunset.
Meanwhile, y/nâs face held an amused facade while her date mansplained Fantasy Football at her, eyes subtly flickering to the clock on the wall periodically. The whole date hadnât gone badly, he paid, bought them drinks, listened intently to every word she spoke but what more was there? Theyâd been skating in circles, and heâd been trying desperately to appeal to her, bragging about his football achievements and now Fantasy Football. He was nice, cute, yeah, but y/n couldnât help but think of Luke every time a word left his mouth. This guy was not special, her stomach was silent, no butterflies like Luke gave her. His smile wasnât contagious like Lukeâs. Luke wouldâve taken her somewhere new they could both try or somewhere they both loved, Lukeâs voice was easy to listen to when he told hockey stories, and heâd already explained fantasy sports to her the same way he would have explained it to a guy. All she thought about was Luke, compared to every guy she met. Poor Luke. She should have told him she liked the kiss then maybe he wouldnât have run blue in the hallway. She couldnât turn the clock back, but what she could do is move forward with the realisation that she did like Luke Hughes, more than a friend.Â
Sheâd told Luke about the disaster date, and heâd been surprised to hear she hadnât enjoyed it since heâd watched the two shower each other with nothing but attention and affection for weeks but Luke had made up his mind. It was time for him to take the backseat, let go of their childhood.Â
Once Monday came around, Luke had to try his best to push his own feelings aside, lay off the romance hints, less like her wannabe boyfriend and act more like a friend, she wasnât interested in him now, she had other boys, and he had to at least pretend he wasnât interested in her. They were besties, nothing more, nothing less. She said it herself. Heâd lost his chance. Even if he tried to ask her out now, what if she rejected him? Laughed in his face? His feelings mattered too, and the last person he wanted hurting them was y/n. Y/n and Luke had made their agreement to be friends, and they hated themselves for letting the flowers of a bittersweet tragedy grow in their lungs violently unless they loved each other the same.
His logic may have been screwed, but it was the only way he would be able to stay in her life, yes girls and guys could be best friends but when you were in love with yours who liked someone else, that became horrendous to bear. Especially on the daily. How was he supposed to be just her friend if he had to be reminded of why heâd go to all ends of the Earth for her every day? Heâd head straight to his friends between bells, pretending heâd not seen her face sink when he walked past. At lunch he sat with his friends most of the time, got involved with their shenanigans while she sat with her group, as if he didnât notice the longing in her eyes. In classes, heâd join his friends a little more, not all the time but more than he used to. When the final bell rang, it was her he sat with on the bus, and it became the best part of the day listening to his voice talk, having a conversation like they used to. It wasnât until heâd started putting a wedge between them that he realised how deep heâd fallen into her grip, and getting out would be the hardest, most confusing and painful part of it.Â
Y/n wasnât used to the whirlwind of emotions, the on-off behaviour but after months of Luke being unable to decide if he wanted to hang out with her or not, sheâd gotten used to it. She didnât expect to see him after the first bell anymore, didnât expect him to find her in the halls (but he did give her a smile and that little upwards nod guys do when they passed each other) or at lunch anymore but when they met on the bus at the end of school, they fell back into each other like magnets. She didnât know what she did wrong that made him build such a wall, but for the first few weeks there wasnât a night she hadnât cried about it, not a day where sheâd see his face in the halls and her heart not gain a heavy weight. It had her emotions in one giant blender, he wanted nothing to do with her throughout the day but once they got home, he replied to texts almost instantly, hung out with her over the weekends, glared daggers into every guy who ever spoke to her and what the hell was going on? He had her engulfed in blankets of loneliness and then bouncing back into that warmth of giddy sensations. The one thing she did know for certain was that the further apart they floated, the more she realised how much she loved Luke Hughes.
When Valentine's Day rolled around, y/n closed her locker, cheeks aching from smiling so much. It would be the day she asked Luke if he wanted to celebrate the day of love with her, go into town, on a date. As she turned to leave, Roller Rink guy unfortunately cornered y/n to her locker, a cocky grin on his face. Nausea riddled; her smile dropped. She thought telling him that they should just be friends would be enough, but he was persistent on wooing her. Luke chewed the inside of his cheek, a cold glare on Roller Rink, he couldnât have cared less about his name, he didnât want that taste on his tongue. How could this guy not get the memo?Â
âSo, you got plans tonight? Gonna give me a second chance?â Roller Rink smirked, stepping that inch too close for her liking. So close that y/n stepped back, bumping into someone else a lot taller, broader.
Luke almost left it, almost walked away but his blood boiled too hot, âWe do, yeah. Sorry buddy, maybe next time.âÂ
âWell look who it is, havenât seen you in a while, Hughes. How about you let the girl speak, yeah?â Roller Rink mocked, condescending. Y/n had never been more grateful for Luke to step in, never been more grateful for a friend like him. Relief fell through her, shoulders becoming weightless, and her muscles finally relaxed.Â
âActually, heâs right. I asked him to meet me here. Bye.â She stuttered, grabbing Lukeâs hand and dragging him through the hall, leaving the other guy in their dust. She grinned the whole way to Lukeâs, hoping he was just as ecstatic as she was. He stuffed his hands in his pockets, falling weak to her.
It was their childhood all over again, Luke and y/n curled up on the sofa, but this time she had her head tucked into his chest while his arm sat comfortably over the back of the sofa. Her ear pressed to his heart, listening to its calm rhythm as Harry Potter played on the TV. They werenât supposed to be that close; he was supposed to be keeping his distance, pushing those ecstatic feelings aside, being her friend but the way she snuggled into him, fitting like a glove in his figure, had his head spinning. The last time, it would be the last time heâd let her do this. Perhaps he could make an exception for Valentine's Day.
Valentineâs Day had been the exception, and the final one. When she left his house, heâd taken a long shower, staring at the wall and rethinking his options. Y/n was playing with his feelings, tugging his heart strings and he couldnât do it anymore. He couldnât cope with the bursts of paradise when their met eyes, only to remember that if she really liked him, she wouldnât have agreed to a date, and wouldn't have avoided his eyes after kissing him. Maybe he was immature, unable to regulate such strong emotions, but he hated the back and forth, he just wanted someone he couldnât have. She went on a date; she didnât like it so she went back to him to seek the affection he couldnât give her. Best friends werenât supposed to be rebounds; he didnât want to be a rebound. If he was to have her, he wanted her, exclusively but maybe right now just wasnât the time.Â
He stopped speaking to her in class, she tried her best to crack him, grab his attention and hopefully heâd return her energy like he used to but all he gave were dry, short replies. He couldnât let himself fall for the sweet sound of her voice and she couldnât let him ignore her interest. When theyâd pass each other in the halls, sheâd smile that warming, toothy grin at him, but he barely looked at her. She caught him after school, asking him if he was taking the bus but Luke waved her off, saying he was carpooling with his friends. Luke was always busy when sheâd asked to hang out, which was okay, he was allowed to have friends. At least he still texted back, not instantly and the messages were shorter, but she took what she could get. Was part of growing up watching friendships float apart? She knew that the older you got, your friends either become closer or further from you, and Luke had been her childhood friend, but she never imagined he would be the one to drift. He was also a human though, he had his own life and his own friends, she would always be there, but his current friends wouldnât so maybe he was just making the most of things. It made sense, next year they would be graduating, and theyâd never see most people again. After all, she still had summer, and youâll never have the summer you had at seventeen.Â
Y/n pulled the photo album out of her wardrobe, brushing the dust off before sitting cross-legged on her bed. It had been a while since sheâd taken a walk down memory lane, more prompted to revise over what life was like before high school started, when times were simpler and smiling came easy.Â
Each photo still had pristine quality, her and the Hughesâ boys on paddleboards, from her and Luke sat together to Jack and Quinn drenched with a capsized board, their treehouse sleepover where they got yelled at in the next morning for being noisy, the time where they played roller hockey and she grazed her elbow, her decorating Jackâs hair with glitter hair clips and a whole lot of her and Luke thick and thieves. Her and Luke at the fireworks, hand in hand, playing Swingball, asleep on the sofa, making friendship bracelets. The bracelets they still wore, even if they werenât as close anymore. Both blue with a little white braided in, a matching pair.Â
In every photo of herself and Luke, there was not even one where Lukeâs attention was on the camera, his eyes were always lit up and focused on her. Each page she turned, the memory played like tapes, vividly and she remembered all the times heâd tried his best to impress her. When she told him that she liked his hair longer, he grew it. When she liked a specific item of clothing, he wore it more. He defended her when Jack and his friends laughed at her, held her closer in the crowds at the carnival, everything about his life revolved around her. Kissing her cheek when they were eleven must have taken a lot of courage and she brushed it off as a friendly gesture. And what did she do? After all his efforts, the way he was utterly enamoured when they kissed in her treehouse, she went on to agree to a date with some loser she didnât really like because she was too oblivious to realise that Luke, her best friend, had been heads over heels for her since they were kids, and she was too late in accepting that. Luke would have never kissed her if he didnât like her and now at seventeen, he really didnât.
How things fall into a complex circle, a game of cat and mouse. Chasing, running, chasing and running, back and forth, back and forth. Guilt tore through her body and she slammed the album closed, running her hands over her face. Perfect, she liked him back the moment he was hard to reach. That horrid guilt in her, that empty feeling when her stomach dropped to the bottom, heart twisting in her chest when she thought about the pain, sheâd put him through. It wasnât over, it couldnât be over, there mustâve been some part of Luke that still held on to hope. What felt like a fire lit inside her stomach, she wasnât going to lose him yet. The summer was approaching, and over summer sheâd have him all to herself with endless possibilities to talk to him, win him over again, prove that he wasnât just a friend. She would not give up on Luke.
When the summer hit, all of Lukeâs efforts hit the fan. She lived right next door now. He woke up every day only to see y/n flaunting around in her bikinis, he didnât think she could get more beautiful but now she was stunning and as much as Luke tried not to check her out, he did every time. Luke himself spent more time at the gym, grew into his features and he towered over his brothers, he wasnât hard to miss, y/n resisted the urge to gawk at him with his summer glow.Â
It felt like his childhood all over again, all of them hanging out on the boat, him and y/n sitting opposite each other, Quinn driving, Jack, Trevor, Cole towards the back hogging the wakeboard and now y/nâs friend, Kim (who had bulging heart eyes towards Cole) sitting next to her. Every now and then heâd catch a glimpse of y/n from the corner of his eye, posed pretty with her chest puffed out, large sunglasses perched on her nose with her lips wrapped around the straw of a canned cocktail as she listened to Kim talk. Butterflies fluttered into his stomach all over again, he hadnât looked at her properly in so long, he felt eleven again looking at her like she was the embodiment of Aphrodite sent down to Earth for him. What he couldnât see was y/n looking at him back, eyes raking his figure and the way his curls bounced in the breeze, shorts fit around his thighs, smirk sat pretty on his lips. It was like the sun shone a halo around his head and her heart couldnât have beat more profoundly out her chest.
When the evening fell, Luke stood on his porch, empty bottles of beer in his hands as he watched her boat pull into her dock, Kim lugging a picnic bag over her shoulder and waving off as she left for home. He hadnât meant to, but it was a moment of weakness, one of those moments where he wondered if he had just been a little stronger, able to cope better with being so close to her while living in pain, if heâd be the one out there in the boat, enjoying a cute picnic dinner on the waters. Â
Y/n struggled as she failed to tie the boat to the dock, the knot slipping, and she groaned in frustration. After a long day in the sun, the last thing she wanted to deal with was her own lack of strength. With the rope clutched in her fingers, she groaned loudly, glancing around for at least someone to help her until her eyes fell upon Luke at his porch. She called his name, waving him over desperately, letting him discard the bottles in his hands before he waltzed his way down the porch and through his garden.
âNeed help?â Lukeâs voice called out to her as he strolled along the dock, shading his eyes from the setting sun as he approached her.
She stepped away, handing him the rope, watching the way his arms flexed as he pulled the knot tight against the cleat, âThanks, that was being a pain in the ass.âÂ
âThey always are, the worst is waking up and seeing the rope snapped, thatâs a pain in the ass.â He chuckled, remembering the morning he found Quinn with his head in his hands with a snapped rope at his feet and boat floating four feet away from the dock. They stood in an uncomfortable silence, the lakeâs critters singing their songs with the occasional car driving in the distance. He stuffed his hands into his pockets, shaking his hair out of his eyes, âSooo, itâs been a while, huh? How have, uh, you been?âÂ
âAll right, you? Congrats on fourth overall pick, by the way, I knew youâd get there. You excited?â She smiled, rolling back on her heels and folding her arms under her chest.
âYeah, Iâve been okay too. Sorry I didnât reply to your text, I had so many Iâm still getting through them, but thank you,â he chuckled, watching her shoulders raise as she gave a little huff in amusement, âand I guess, Iâm happy that Iâll be with Jack but itâs gonna be tough. But Iâll worry about it later, Iâm planning on college first, making some friends and that. Speaking of, Cameron, really?â
She forgot about him; he was that irrelevant she had actually forgotten sheâd briefly dated her classmate, Cameron. She only did it in hope Luke would interrogate her, it made her a horrible person, yes, but Cameron was no saint by any means either. She hoped Luke would do what he normally did, get protective and ask her a million questions, like he did with Roller Rink, and heâd swoop in and woo her away instead, but when Luke only glared and scoffed, her plan for his attention had failed.Â
Y/nâs eyebrows raised, and she blew out a defeated puff of air, shaking her head at Luke, âDonât even go there, Lu. A wet rag would have a more interesting personality than he ever would. Thank God itâs over, finally. Surprised you didnât interrogate me at the time.â
âEh, I thought about it, but I didnât wanna be that guy, yâknow?â he shrugged, a static sensation crawling its way from the pits of his stomach where heâd shoved it, scuttling through his limbs and into his muscles. That euphoric feeling from the treehouse two years or so ago prying its way back into his memory the more they spoke. The feeling was exactly what he was running from, he couldnât help liking her more than a friend but all the weight on his shoulders lifted and he felt free again, like being a professional hockey prodigy didnât matter to her, she would like him anyway as just Luke.Â
âYouâd never annoy me like that.â They fell into a silence, Luke prodding the decking with the tip of his slides, y/n watching him occupy himself. She forgot how being with him felt. He felt exactly like they were standing, warm summer evenings on the docks with the breeze in their hair, in a smitten haze where nothing mattered. âLu? Whereâd you go? What happened to us?â
He froze and stood properly, eyes squinting from the sunâs glare as he looked up slowly. He hadnât gone anywhere, is what he wanted to say but the wet glaze in her eyes suggested that y/n wouldâve torn him to shreds if he kept avoiding her. Heâd hurt her enough. His throat dried, a lump forming when he swallowed, âIâŚI got swept up in this whole draft business, family were really on my back about the whole thing, then I had Five Nations last year and Worlds next year, practice was intense and um, I was losing time with my friendsâŚI guess. Theyâre likely moving out of state for college, and weâll probably never see each other after high school.â
He wasnât lying but what he really wanted to say refused to leave his throat, like the words were stuck in his chest.
She nodded, it was a valid answer, it made sense, she knew how his life revolved around hockey, when had it not? It just didnât feel like heâd said everything he wanted to say, but he didnât continue. He watched her purse her lips, the pinks from the sky fading into dark and the moon reflected over the lake, little lamps on the dock glowing yellow around them. If there were any moment he could kiss her, it would have been then. It had to be that moment when he felt his younger self spring to life within, entranced with her existence alone and the memory of the day they met, her hand reaching out to him specifically and never letting it go. Not Jackâs, not Quinnâs, always his.
âThatâs fair enough,â she gave a gentle chuckle, âmaybe a little warning next time, I thought I pissed you off.â
âNever, Iâm sorry about that, I shouldâve said,â he laughed with her until they settled, âwell, I should get going before I ruin game night for the family, it was nice to chat again.â
âYeah, it was. Thanks for tying the boat, see you âround.â With little nods and longing smiles, they both turned, heading in opposite directions towards the paths up their yards until the sudden burst of adrenaline rose in her chest. There wasnât a lot to lose anymore, they were on good terms, he wasnât pissed off with her and what better way to give him a fat hint, âLu!â
He stopped in his tracks and turned towards her yelling, he hadnât made it too far down the dock, her voice was crystal clear and his nickname in her voice just made his chest swell.Â
âYouâre looking good these days!âÂ
That uncontrollable urge to grin took over his muscles like he was a puppet, sheâd finally noticed. His hair kept long the snug swim shorts, t-shirts and polos in styles sheâd once said suited him. How could he not feel a buzz run through him, almost dizzying. As if on autopilot, fuelled by this sudden nostalgic rapture, he called back,
âAnd youâre still pretty!âÂ
No, she was beautiful, but heâd rather not yell when he knew his brothers were chewing table legs waiting for him. If he admitted it now, heâd never go back, heâd fold all over again and although she thought he looked good, spent their conversation glancing at his arms and lips, showing sprinkles of indications that perhaps he was still in the running after all, making his move after heâd sat in the backseat for so long pretending like he wasnât interested just felt wrong. He had so much to explain before he even tried.
Another year, another carnival and y/n thought sheâd be enjoying the games and food stalls with her best friend, Kim. She thought theyâd be in photobooths, laughing over the stupid games that the odd person won and trying out the new churros stall but instead, the moment Cole offered to accompany her on a few rides, y/n knew sheâd be on her own until the fireworks. She had no idea where Luke was, so tagging along with him was off the list as well and she was not going to hang around the parents and her brother and his friends, gross.
The woman behind the counter smiled, handing the cone of churros to y/n before turning to the family next to her. Kim may have been missing out, but she sure was not going to pass up the opportunity for fresh and warm sweet treats that only cost her a couple dollars. She stepped to the side, away from the counter, the aroma of sugary delights filling her senses as she took her first bite. She hadnât tasted something so incredible since she discovered what pancakes were.Â
A firm hand on her lower back wiped all sense of a blissful retreat from her body, her grip on the churros tightening and she froze, a cold presence looming over her with his hot breath plaguing her neck. Why? Why in all places where there are families with children? She wanted to run but her legs locked into place, that horrific fear chilling her spine and the default thought that it was over echoing in her mind.Â
âYou look a little lonely, I can keep you company.â The guy breathed deeply in her ear, with a suggestive tinge in the way he spoke. She didnât dare look him in the eye, just peered through her peripheral vision enough to know he was at least in his twenties.Â
âIâm not, Iâm with my boyfriend, actually.â She replied, as confidently as she could possibly bear without bursting into tears. His thumb rubbed against the fabric of her jeans, her appetite sinking into nausea.
âItâs okay, sweetheart. I donât bite.â He pinched a churro from her cone and now theyâd been infected, now she didnât want them anymore. The closer he stood to her, the filthier she felt like it was all her fault for not moving away. Y/nâs eyes remained fixed to the grass below, tears welling and her throat closing as she choked back a sob. She squeezed her eyes shut, helplessness overruling every ounce of strength she had the closer the guy pressed himself into her back.
âYeah, but I do so fuck off.â Lukeâs voice clipped, his hand sliding over her shoulders gently. Y/nâs eyes snapped open, immediately recognising the white Air Forces and the voice in her ears, legs finally gaining the ability to move again, and she let Lukeâs hand guide her into him instead, dropping the churros into the bin nearby. She wrapped her arms around his middle, ear pressed to his chest and the tears ran hot, yet the way his arms secured around her shoulders brought a warm sense of belonging somewhere.Â
âWoah, easy tiger. Was just making sure the little lady was safe in a place like this-â the guy raised his hands in front of his chest as if to surrender, an amused smirk smeared across his face as Lukeâs stare darkened. His guilt taunted him, he shouldâve been there and then she wouldnât be shaking in his arms. Kim shouldnât have ditched her, and he should have been a friend and stuck by her side. The minute he saw the guy approach her, his vision burned red and he was shoving his way through the crowds, whatever people were shouting at him couldnât have mattered less.Â
â-Iâm calling security.â Luke exasperated, and he wouldâve called security if the woman with her child at the stall nearby hadnât already done so, the creep swearing and making a break for it. Y/n pulled her face away from his chest with red eyes, arms loosely wound around his waist still as she peered up at him. Lukeâs eyes softened and on instinct his palms cupped her cheeks, wiping the remaining tears away with his thumbs. âI got you, sâjust you and me.â
Her eyes sparkled under the fairy lights, stared at him like he was an angel sent from the skies to watch over her and he knew it. He saw it just as she saw his ears tint pink again. They hadnât done that in months. He hadnât felt that hot in months and the outside temperature was breezy.Â
Y/n hoped he kiss her. Right there, where they were alone. Their eyes never leaving each otherâs and his hands jolting electrifying sparks over her skin. Sheâd forgotten what it felt like to be touched my him, how light she felt. The less and less theyâd touched, spoken, been in each otherâs proximity the more intense the memory and feeling crashed over her in waves of yearning. The voice in her head begging him, Luke! Please stop running! I love you! Love me like you once did!Â
His hands dropped and slipped into his shortâs pockets, his gaze eventually leaving hers and jumping to the flashing lights of the stalls surrounding them, âYou all right?âÂ
âI am now, thanks.âÂ
âIâm sorry,â he watched her open her mouth to speak, but he couldnât keep it in his chest, she was there, and his emotions were running too fast to think about what he was doing. The words spilled out, âIâm sorry for not being there. Now and over the past year. Y/n, Iâm so fucking sorry. I wanted to tell you at the docks but, I dunno, I fucked it and then it was too late and-â
Her hands balled around his t-shirt, pulling him closer, âLu, itâs okay. I forgive you.â
âNo, no you might not,â he ran his hands through his hair harshly, âit wasnât just because of hockey and my friends. I was jealous and insecure and that feels so good to finally admit. You went on a date with whatâs-his-face, and I donât know, I guess I thought I was being replaced and I was stupid about it, then it got too deep and fuck!â And I was so in love with you and then I lost my chance.
Y/n didnât let go of him. His hands slipped back into his pockets, and he waited, eyes searching hers with sympathy written in them, the guilt on his face with shaky breaths. That was it? He was just insecure and was unable to process it? She heard him out, she would have probably thought the same and at that age, it wasnât easy to just speak up about it, especially when you think you have no chance at all. She wasnât mad, disappointed slightly, angrier at herself that he felt like he couldnât tell her.Â
âI forgive you. I probably would have done the same thing, honestly. Yeah, you were stupid, that was really stupid, and it really hurt. Iâm also sorry for making you feel like you were being replaced. But if it brings any reassurance, no one would ever be able to replace you.â She pulled him into a hug, arms wrapping around his middle again and his around her shoulders, their height difference making them fit perfectly.
They pulled away after a few seconds, Luke clearing his throat as they stepped back awkwardly, âWe should, um, probably head to the spot now.âÂ
âOh, yeah! Yeah, totally. Um, thanks for stepping in againâŚI really appreciate it.â She blinked twice and fixed her hair, snapping out of her daze, the corners of her lips quirking upwards. Luke nodded before they re-entered the crowds, her arm looping around his as he led them through, glancing at her every now and then until theyâd slipped out the other side, catching sight of Jack and his friends heading in the same direction as them.
Their families chose the specific spot when they were kids, it was out the way of the popular viewing places and to reach it required tackling a tedious staircase to the top of the hill, but it was the best spot that looked over the carnival below. Like most years, the two families were divided into their own little huddles, but Luke and y/n stood together like they were eleven again. Her grip around his arm tightened a little, head leaning against his arm and unleashing a giddy tingle into Lukeâs chest. Y/nâs heart raced like sheâd never been alone with him before, like it was the first time sheâd been alone with him and God, just thinking about how Luke had kissed her for the first time in that exact spot just made her stomach warm.Â
He slipped his hand out of his pocket slowly, keeping his eyes on the sky as the firework displayâs music faded in. Like feathers, her fingers ran down his forearm, tracing over his skin and veins that ran hot with a resurfacing captivation like a drug he just couldnât quit. Without saying a word or giving each other any kind of endearing look, her palm met his and fingers interlaced, rebuilding the bridge between the two lost souls as the pinks and reds of whirlwinds and willows reflected over gleaming eyes.
The Hughes family threw parties all the time, had been since they moved in next to the L/nâs all those years ago. Jim and Ellen always had some sort of party for the boys and as they grew older, Jack more or less became the main host, especially with the arrival of Trevor and Cole. That night it was the two families along with the Tkachuks, who moved to the lake a few years prior, who held some sort of belated celebration for Lukeâs drafting success. According to Ellen, they would have done it nearer the time, but Quinn insisted the Tkachuks should join since they had played such a big role in the Hughesâ lives.Â
Afternoon barbeques drifted into evening drinks and sâmores around the bonfire, Jack and Cole tossing marshmallows into each otherâs mouths, Matthew telling Trevor (who spilled molten marshmallow on his knee and was trying to wipe it off with great struggle) a detailed story from one of his NHL games, Brady and Quinn debating something, it wasnât entirely clear anymore what the topic was but they seemed to be in disagreement either way and Lukeâs eyes flickered around the fire, in search of his person. Her brother was still there, kicking a ball around on the grass with a couple of his friends heâd been allowed to invite. Her parents were inside talking to the other parents.Â
He stood up, unnoticed by the others, and wandered to the side gate, taking a quick look back before slipping out quietly and ambling next door to the l/nâs side gate, silently turning the hatch and letting himself into their garden. As he suspected, a faint, amber glowed from the window of the treehouse and those fairy lights didnât turn on by themselves. With a sigh of relief, Luke carefully made his way across the garden, his footsteps heavy on the wooden stairs up to the platform and he opened the door a crack before letting himself into the structure.
The treehouse felt tiny compared to when they were kids. He was too tall for it now, having to duck under the door and crane his neck slightly, shutting it behind him. Y/n sat against the wall, staring out the window with her legs stretched out in front of her. Sheâd watched him come up the stairs, and it brought the slightest bit of relief that someone had noticed her absence. Luke sat next to her, shoulder to shoulder with his back against the wall like hers, the little lights that hung around the top of the walls giving their skin a dim glow.Â
âWhatâcha doinâ up here, pretty?â he asked softly.
 She turned her head to face the wall opposite, head bumping the wood, âGot cold and needed to think. What about you? Donât you wanna be down there, gettinâ advice from the big dogs?âÂ
âWould rather be here with you.â He chuckled lightly, Deja vu of the conversation. The last time they sat in the treehouse together, before things spiralled. She shivered, running her hands over her arms to rid the goosebumps. Luke shimmied his sweatshirt over his head, the navy blue âUSA Hockeyâ one he always thought would look better on her, âHere, put this on.âÂ
âYou sure?â he nodded, and she pulled the sweatshirt over her head, the size engulfing her but she was too warm to care, âThanks, but really, how did you know I was here?â
âHad a feeling. Do you wanna talk about it?âÂ
She stayed quiet for a little moment before speaking, âMâjust a little worried about college. My friends applied so far out of state with all these cool stories from relationships and drama and shit and I feel a littleâŚboring. What if people at UMich think Iâm boring? What if Iâm gonna be alone? Iâm not boring, am I?âÂ
âIf it brings you any comfort, Iâm worried too. You know my friends are leaving the state too, and I also havenât exactly been the most exciting socially either, just those odd parties, you remember those surely,â he muttered, his voice raspy as she nodded, âyouâre not boring, by the way, never losing a game of beer pong is a talent people will kill for in college, and you wonât be alone. Youâre the most likeable person Iâve ever met, and I admire how you find talking to people so easy. Remember when we started high school? You jumped straight into the jungle and made friends within the first day, took me a week to properly make mine, I was terrified. Besides, Iâll be there so you can always come find me.â
 Y/n didnât reply, but she soaked in his voice and how easy the words left his mouth. He always knew just what to say, and that was yet another reason why she loved him. She sighed, leaning her head against his bicep, gently nuzzling her cheek into him as if to comfort herself. If only heâd wrapped her arm around her, but resting his head against hers was enough, just like they had when they were kids watching Harry Potter. Back when Luke pined over her and she didnât think too much of it, not knowing what it was, what it meant. He may have been the only guy that ever loved her like that. Roller Rink was far more interested in the idea of having a girlfriend and CameronâŚCameron couldnât have cared less about who she was as long as she had female anatomy.Â
âDo you think Iâm lovable? Like, not because of the way I look.â She babbled out of the blue, Lukeâs eyebrows knitting with confusion at her sudden question, but he had asked what was on her mind.
âI think youâre the most lovable person there is. Youâre funny, youâre witty, you have this admirable determination and ability to socially chameleon. Oh God, and youâre so sweet, always know how to make someone feel at peace. Whatâs-his-face and fucking Cameron have no idea what theyâre missing.â He rambled, a smile spreading across his face as the lights in the room sparkled in his eyes. She looked at him with awe, his voice like a song that would now become her favourite as he talked with adoration, valuing her as a human being with her flaws and perfections that crumbled the walls heâd spent so long building.
âLuâŚâ She wanted to say something back, kiss his face all over, take him by the cheeks and kiss his lips so hard they wouldnât be able to breathe. That comfortable silence between them where eyes met and debated leaning in, submitting to his childhood crush and her adolescent realisation.
Her phone buzzed, she hesitantly pulled her eyes from his and after reading the notification she slammed the device back onto the floor, groaning and rolling her eyes. She grabbed her phone back, swiping and blocking Cameronâs Instagram. Blocking was crazy, but it was the only way heâd stop begging her for âanother chanceâ.Â
âGoing by that reaction, Iâm taking that was Cameron?â Luke raised his eyebrow, watching her place her phone to the side and lean back into the wall.Â
âCan I tell you something, but you canât tell anyone, not even your brothersâŚokay?â She breathed out, staring at both their feet.Â
Luke hesitated, shivers running up his spine, âYeah, I didnât tell anyone about the twenty-fifteen fireworks, did I?â
âUgh, he was awful, Iâm actually glad it didnât last long. Such an asshole, I just couldnât do anything right for him. Bad girlfriend, bad person, bad kisser, prude. And talk about peer pressure, I didnât wanna have sex with him, right? Because if Iâm gonna lose my virginity itâs definitely not gonna be with him, and then he got all pissy and said that if I didnât, heâd tell people I was a bad fuck, couldnât make him cum or whatever. Anyway, you probably heard the rumours.â Y/n took a deep breath, she wasnât sure why she was telling Luke that, but why would he tell anyone? It wasnât like he had any more experience than her.
âWhat happened next?â he asked, deep down his blood boiled, the nonchalant facade heâd been building up began to crumble the more they found themselves alone, the more childhood memories that flooded back to him and reminded him of how much of a coward he was, that he shouldâve just shoot his shot instead of running away.
âThen I caught him cheating, broke up with him and he threw a tantrum about it, started talking shit about you, saying how I was probably cheating on him first anyway, so it all cancels out. Told his friends that he caught me sucking your dick and how distraught he was over it. Next day he happily made out with his new girl in the hall, so I obviously did not matter at all and was just a plaything.â She chuckled sadly, leaning her head onto Lukeâs bicep. He wanted to scream, hold her tight and tell her how wrong she was about herself, that she wasnât a plaything, that he was a prick. But he couldnât, instead his mind travelled to the worst parts of him, he wouldâve beaten the hell out of Cameron given the chance. His deepest fantasies crept back to him like a virus all over again.Â
âYou donât deserve to be treated like that,â his voice lowered, gaze peering down to her with a fiery glaze in his eyes and she looked back at him, curious. âIâd never treat you like that, youâd mean everything to me. Every word, every kiss, everything.â
She released a shaky breath, adrenaline sparking in her chest, âI canât stop thinking about how easy it was to move on for him, I just want to forget the humiliation, but I donât know how to do that.âÂ
His gaze burned through her, a rush of desire surging, and sheâd never seen his face soften like that before, like he was thinking carefully. Lukeâs hand reached for hers, sliding over her thigh and lacing their fingers together, like they always seem to do. From the pits of his brain, eleven-year-old Luke squeaked out to him and his heart screamed to grasp the opportunity: stop being stubborn, you like her, you like her, you like her, you still like her.
âWe could make out, weâve already kissed here, and if he can do it, why canât you? Think of it as liberation.â She would have thought he was joking if it werenât for the way his voice dropped and calm tone. He was dead serious, not a drop of amusement in his voice but he was right, they had already kissed once so what was the harm in doing it again? She peered up at him, eyes scanning his features, flickering between his lips and waiting gaze.
Sheâd be a fool to pass up Luke Hughesâ attention after growing apart from him. When he suggested making out, why would she pass it up, the guy still gave her butterflies even if she was just holding onto a painful delusion written by the past. It wouldnât do any harm, it would take her mind off her turmoil, the haunting thoughts that a boy used her, and humiliated her. It wouldnât do any harm; it was just a kiss. Only a kiss that would stick with her, their mutual magnetic pull over the summer striking up the same thought between them. Maybe they did like each other the same.Â
Letting go of his hand, she hoisted her leg over his and straddled his lap, hand settling on his chest. A newfound adrenaline lit up inside her like wildfire, his large hands cupping her jaw with nerves wrecking his body, thumb rubbing her cheek. He wet his lips, his one hand sliding to her nape, and he pulled her in slowly.
âYeah, liberation.â She whispered, closing the gap between them, lips meeting timidly before she melted into his body, Lukeâs tongue ran across her bottom lip, a moan drawing from the back of her throat as she let him in, licking into his mouth with a sweet desire.Â
Neither had an expert understanding of how to make out, but the more they fell into a rhythm of disconnecting for a breath, just to connect again for another taste, the more electric the tension between them became. She slid her hand from his chest to his curls, fingers tangling in the loose ringlets and tugging tenderly, too caught up in the pleasure to think coherently. Luke moaned hungrily, his hand gliding from her nape down the curve of her spine and his hand settling on her hip, fingers gripping her hipbone the moment she rolled into his crotch. The buzz from the gathering next door was silenced in their ears, the only noises in their proximity being the sound of their lips eating each other and tongues lapping in a hot and heavy haze, whines slipping in as a warm temptation flushed through them. He bucked his hips up, as if on an instinct, following his heart rather than his head for once.Â
Even if they couldnât keep their hands off each other, they pulled back panting, eyes locked in a risky delirium. He ran his thumb over her swollen bottom lip, gulping when she wrapped her lips around the fingertip, sucking softly and swirling her tongue while refusing to drop the intense eye contact. Lukeâs heart thundered, hard. So strongly he could feel it in his ears and undoubtedly his cheeks were pink. They were in each otherâs grasps, overridden with a lewd rhapsody that had the bottom of their stomachs twisting and eyes half-lidded with lust. If Luke could feel how her underwear stuck to her in that moment, she would have never been able to recover from it. Kissing him so deeply with every ounce of desire that riddled her bones sent her into a dizzy haze, pussy throbbing for more every time he adjusted his hips up to meet hers.Â
âWhat else can that mouth do?â he muttered, watching a new side of the girl he grew up with. His head was in a whole new place, a foggy mess all because she squirmed on his lap, felt euphoric on his tongue and kissed him like she meant it, like his hands over her body was all it took to light the spark that burned between them.
She released his thumb with a coy smile, a string of saliva between her bottom lip and his thumb. She could feel how tight his shorts had become and gave her hips another roll over his crotch, thriving in how his breath hitched, âWanna find out?â
âPlease.â He said with a shaky breath, hands finding their way to her thighs, running his palms along the flesh.Â
Y/n bit her bottom lip, readjusting her seating by spreading his legs and setting herself on her knees between them. Although not comfortable, that was the least of her concerns. She flipped the hem of his t-shirt up and unbuckled his belt, fumbling with the button of his shorts and tucking her fingers into his boxerâs waistband. He lifted his hips, allowing her to shimmy his bottoms down just enough for his cock to spring free. He leant his head against the wall, hands covering his face when she rubbed languid strokes over his cock, thriving in his muffled whines when her thumb circled the pre-cum around his tip.Â
âMm, so big, Lu.â She hummed, spitting into her palm and giving him hard strokes from the base, smiling at how his Adamâs Apple bobbed. God, he wished he hated it, wished he didnât feel ecstatic when she called him his nickname, the name only she called him. He wished he hated how her hand looked tiny against his cock, how good he felt.
âShit,â he whined, âneed your mouth already, please, y/n, please.â
âOnly if you stop hiding, I wanna see your face.â She gave his tip relentless kitten licks, a vicious thrill shuddering down her limbs to her core. He did as he was told, hands trying to grip the wood beneath them and she grinned, taking him into her mouth and just to drive him insane, moaning and his taste blessing her taste buds.Â
âOh God,â he breathed raggedly, a twinge of a groan mixed in as her tongue lay flat on the underside of his cock, swallowing him as if sheâd done it hundreds of times before like sheâd thought about it intensely. Her name left his mouth in a mantra, followed by swearing and whimpers he never imagined himself making.Â
She peered up through her lashes, the moan she let out reverberating around his cock with such a tainted pleasure that he gasped, his eyes fluttering open to the sight of her bobbing her head over him, watching him lose himself with a burning face and submissive mewls emitting from his lips. Writhing under his childhood best friendâs mouth, in her treehouse of all places while she sucked him off with shameless lust wasnât something he expected. She had him a moaning mess and for a moment he thought that only she could be capable of doing so. There wasnât a chance any other girl could make him feel that much emotion during such a filthy act, his childhood crush flooding back to him all over again, all that excitement, nerves, butterflies in his stomach and now the adolescent storm of love, lust, desire, dedication and everything that got mixed up in between.
He tensed, y/nâs free hand skirting up his shirt and splaying over his abs, feeling all the dips in muscles as his core tightened the deeper she took him, hissing when his cock hit the back of her throat. How on Earth she managed it, he wouldnât know, and he didnât care because it felt exhilarating, sweat forming on his forehead. He bucked his hips up, an erotic, deep moan drawing out from her.Â
âFuck, so close, mâgonna cum,â he breathed, âgonna cum, y/n, please.âÂ
His thighs shuddered, her hands lying flat on them as Luke exhaled deeply, the knot in his core unravelling as he thrust into her mouth, his hot cum coating her tongue and throat and his jaw slacked, panting when she swallowed every drop of him, as much as she could before pulling her lips off him. His eyes pricked tears from overstimulation, fluttering shut as his chest rose and fell.
âWhere-whereâd you learn that?â he whispered, tucking himself back into his underwear and re-dressing himself. It was as if his high wore off, the world tuned back in, and he could hear the buzz of his familyâs gathering next door again.Â
She wiped the dribble of cum from her lip with her finger, taking it into her mouth and licking it clean, âI read a lot, followed my instincts.âÂ
âFuck, that felt incredible. Youâre incredible, never gonna forget that. Fuck, youâre still an amazing kisser, oh my fucking God.â He couldnât help but smile, it felt like old times. The easy air where no judgement lurked, secrets could be spilt and theyâd stay between the two of them, heâd sit there, admiring and folding over how pretty she was while sheâd treat him like a prince. Perhaps theyâd just made another bad choice, how could he not ignore his feelings now, it was so hard to resist temptation and push back the butterflies. After all those months running away from himself, from her and all that achieved was him running back around straight into her grip again. He was done with running; he was going to give himself one last chance.
With a giggle, she crawled out from between his legs and re-took her seat next to him, âNow that was memorable. Remind me to kiss you more. Do you make noises like that for every girl? They were so fucking hot.âÂ
âNah, only you. Been only you. Kissed only you.â Luke let a chuckle pass his lips, closing his eyes and grinning to himself. She exhaled, peeking up at him in his peaceful state. Only her, only her. Even after all that time, heâd never looked at another girl. She was the only girl heâd ever kissed, only ever done anything with and even after heâd kept her far from his reach, it was because he only ever wanted her. Now they had each other, side-by-side, in her treehouse where sheâd given her first ever blowjob and she didnât regret one second of it, and never would despite however life turned out.Â
âYou wonât tell anyone about thisâŚwill you?â her voice was quiet, and she pulled her knees to her chest. âNot because Iâm ashamed but like, well, you know, kinda embarrassing people knowing our businessâŚâ
Luke copied her, resting his arms over his knees, âIâm not gonna say anything if you donât want me to, y/n. You know I wouldnât do that, but I get what you mean. I really donât want my brothers talking about it, and you know Jack canât even keep his own secrets.â
âAre we cool now? No more of- whatever weâve been doing?â she held out her fist.
âWeâre cool. Just you ân me again.â He bumped her fist with his, âWeâre thinking of taking the boat out again tomorrow, you should come.â
She nudged his shoulder with hers, âMaybe I will, maybe Iâll wear my best bikini.âÂ
âMaybe you should, maybe Iâll wear the blue shorts.â He nudged back, both knowing exactly which items of swimwear they were referencing. The hibiscus pattern bikini that couldnât have suited her any more perfectly and the swim shorts that hugged his thighs too nicely, that he only wore after heâd caught her staring.
They smiled brightly, lights reflecting in their eyes as they leaned into each otherâs sides. The sweet sensation of closure, burying a hatchet in the place it all started. It wasnât a conventional way to make up, but feelings resolved that night, messages conveyed and for those few hours they spent up there, they were finally on the same page.
Reconnecting with someone who was once your entire world changes your perception of life itself. The sun shone brighter, the air warmer and serotonin at an all-time high. What they hadnât realised was that reconnecting after straying away came with a thick tension between them, not like a negative, doom and gloom but something else. Something exciting.
On boat days, every time their eyes would meet, stomachs would twist and feel a heat pool in their cores. Every little move felt suggestive, every time he adjusted the way he sat so his shorts would rise up his thighs slightly, every time she adjusted her bikini, when heâd place his hand on her hips as heâd walk past, sitting on his lap and playing with his curls to make more space for the others on the seats.
At the golf course, with his lean arms wrapped around her, hands on top of hers and guiding her positioning and swing of the club, his breathing on her neck making her body melt into his and Luke fighting off the urge to drop the club entirely and pull her into his embrace, to pepper her neck with butterfly kisses until he found her sweet spot.
Nights around the firepit, cuddled on his lap in the lawn chair wearing his hoodie, his hand stroking her thigh and mumbling conversations between each other, lips dangerously close with hot breaths on each other's necks.
Naps where they lay on each other's chests, arms wound around bodies and legs tangled under sheets and blankets.
The difference between their reconnecting and the average personâs reconnecting was that actions spoke louder than words, but neither were speaking up. Luke had done his best, been explicit in the treehouse, held her close whenever they were together. Y/n was in a bumbling state, accepting every one of Lukeâs attempts, relishing in the feeling of being loved and appreciated, hoping her time and attention would be enough for him.
The difference between Luke and y/n couldnât have been more obvious to a bystander. Luke, a shameless loverboy enduring the relentless teasing from his brothers about how down bad he was and y/n, endeared but tortured Luke with her inability to verbalise her feelings, an overthinker. Luke spent so many years being direct about himself and y/n spent so many years stuck in her head and generating the worst possible situations. All he wanted was confirmation, something that said âYouâre my only too, my everything. Only youâ, something from her vocal cords.
Y/n wiped the sweat from her forehead with her arm, knees sore from kneeling on the grass for so long and hands soaking from the gardening gloves. Her mum had gone crazy with her flowers again, and insisted she needed the family to help her plant the new bulbs much to her father and brotherâs dismay. The worst part was the chatter from the Hughesâ, taunting her with how much fun they were having and how she was doing manual labour in the heat. A whole morning of listening to laughter, Jack and Trevorâs voices above anyone else's but all she thought about was Luke and his smile, his real laugh that came from his chest, the way he laughed with his body. All while she dug holes just to refill them again.
Somewhere around noon, she had thrown the gloves off and stood up, exhaling deeply and next door still had fun without her. God, if her fear of missing out was that bad then college would be excruciating. Having enough and falling submissive to her FOMO, she climbed her treehouse stairs, settling on the step that was high enough to see over the garden fence.Â
You donât deserve to be treated like that, Iâd never treat you like that, youâd mean everything to me. Every word, every kiss, everything.
For a guy whoâd been all over her, confessed that he felt something for her and told her that everything between them meant something to him, she sure became suspicious of it. Her stomach sank, tongue poking the inside of her cheek at him looking perfectly entertained pressed between two girls on the outdoor sofa, one of them suspiciously close to his face. She could only see him from behind, but she knew any girl who entered the Hughes residence was drop-dead gorgeous and if there was one thing she had learnt was that boys suck. He didnât flinch out the way, didnât move seats, didnât push them off, he just let them. Jumping to conclusions wasnât the person she wanted to be, but the festering irritation in her stomach wasnât ignorable. Yet she trusted him, and before she would deep it, she wanted to think first, at least ask him about it before her jealousy got the best of her. She turned on her heel, thumped down the stairs and continued her gardening, which was now a lot more fun than next door.
Lukeâs face burned red, only Jack would do him dirty in front of his cousins like that. His business was apparently the familyâs business. The whole morning heâd been interrogated by his cousins about y/n, how she was, what she was up to, was she cute, did she make him happy, what she looked like. He pulled his phone out, opening his camera roll and pulling up a photo of her, his cousins leaning into him for a better look of the screen in the sun.Â
âOh my god, sheâs so pretty, Luke!â Beth mused.
âHow have you not asked her out?â Stephanie asked in a hushed voice, earning giggles from Jack and Quinn.
âI have been trying since I was eleven, okay? Sheâs justâŚnot easy to read sometimes. I mean, I think weâre on the same page now, so I was gonna ask her next time I see her, ask her on a date to our favourite arcade.â He grinned at the thought, heâd planned it when he was fifteen and had been counting down the days to finally ask her himself.
He lay in bed that same night, seconds away from rolling over and turning his lamp off until his phone flashed, an influx of y/nâs texts coming through like wildfire. Running his hand over his dreary face, he picked his phone back up, reading each message one by one with unease. He squinted his eyes as if it would clear his confusion, her sudden outburst of accusations making him replay the events of the day.
Y/n/n Who were those girls??? Why were they literally on you Luluuuu how many girls are you gettiiinnng Lulu Huh? What are you talking about Oh they were my cousins. You met them years ago. I was showing them pics of you They were not on me thats gross they were looking at my phone so untwist your panties
Y/nâs heart skipped a beat, or it felt like it. He was showing pictures of her? To his family?
Y/n/n ?? Beth and Steph?? That was NOT them they were blonde as fuck My panties are fine thank you Lulu LMAO yeah it was Didnât know you were spying on me you lil peepin tom Yeah sure sounds like it. Itâs okay to be â¨jealous⨠but youâre still no.1 Y/n/n Ok I believe you WAS NOT SPYING WAS STUCK DOING GARDENING AND WAS CURIOUS Not jealous loser
Luke blew a puff of air through his nose, liking the message and placing the phone on his nightstand before rolling over. Usually, he was the one biting back his tongue, but seeing her jealous for once just made his heart swell a little more, it was cute, she cared.Â
Y/n lay face down in her bed, face stuffed into her pillow and arms by her side. At least the irritation left but now she just felt like an idiot. But not a big idiot since she at least asked Luke what was going on, but still an idiot for even assuming heâd go and do something like that to her. She just hoped Luke didnât think she was stupid.
Y/n hung her head in defeat, she tied the knot exactly how Luke had and yet she still couldnât win. Another evening out on the lake with Kim, another evening where she wished she didnât have to tie the boat to the dock.Â
Hands nudged hers out the way and once again Luke had come to her rescue, crouched next to her and tying the rope to the cleat, like he had at the beginning of summer. They stood up straight, smiley, waiting for someone to say something with the crickets chirping and Lukeâs brothersâ voices in the background.
âThanksâŚagain. I should get it someday.â She scratched her neck.
His mouth faltered, opening and closing to speak but he couldnât choke the words out. He wanted to ask her, scream from the rooftops but something in his mind stopped him. What if she said no? How awkward that would be, theyâd have to spend the last weeks of summer pretending as if nothing was going on, even if it was more than obvious that feelings were mutual. But what if she rejected him again? His hands slipped into his pockets, and he rocked on his heels.
âSo, uh, since we're cool, um, was wondering for a while now if, um, and you don't have to but, uh, if you wanted to,â he started, sweat forming on his temple as his body ran hot. Heâd watched Jack ask girls out, he made it look way too easy than it was, why couldnât he just spit it out, he wanted it, that moment was what heâd been waiting for his whole life, she was right there. Chest tight, stomach doing flips, the adrenaline surging through him making his cheeks flush pink.
Her heart throbbed, cheeks ached but in a nice way, in a joyful way. This time, she would not miss her chance, it would be her and him until the end and she hoped, she begged the stars that he was going to ask her on a date. The whole summer with him, kindling spirits and rebuilding what had crumbled, two flames burning together and feeling as if she were the only girl in the world to him.
What was the worst that could happen? Rejection. Fear. Lukeâs knees felt like jelly, his hands trembling and his mind coming to a blank. He couldnât breathe, his heart wouldnât pace itself and the words tumbled from his mouth in a panic, âum, well, Jack, Quinn and I were gonna check out this beach tomorrow and I was wondering if you wanted to come?â
He wasnât lying, they were, but it wasnât what he wanted to say. Y/n kept her smile even though it felt as if all her organs had been sucked from inside her to leave her a void. All that hope just for it to dissipate into thin air. All the little moments they shared, holding hands, exchanging secrets and forgiving, forgetting and going nowhere. It wasnât until then it occurred to her that some people just werenât meant to be more than friends. Just werenât meant to take that leap into romance. Some people just were not ready.Â
âYeah, sure. Text me the details.âÂ
The closer they were just felt like theyâd drifted further apart. Theyâd come so close until one of them just couldnât do it, pushed the other away and not out of dislike either, because it was hard to not love each other but when youâd been friends for so long, everything - friends, family - felt at jeopardy. Right person, wrong time? It didnât matter. Y/n and Luke would spend the rest of their summer as close friends. Nobody could hate Luke more than he hated himself, that bubbling in his stomach, boiling blood at only the boy who would stare back at him in the mirror. Nobody cried more than y/n, that pang in her heart every time theyâd hang out, bottomless hollowness in her stomach when she soaked her pillows in the comfort of her bedroom. So close yet so far, like the stars that sparkled in their eyes when they looked at each other like theyâd hung them out for each other. Once again, theyâd signed that contract to be friends and if they were just that little bit braver, then maybe theyâd stop letting the flowers of a bittersweet tragedy grow in their lungs, choke and suffocate them until one couldnât do it anymore and concluded their decision. It was time to move on, stop waiting and set themselves free from the one who couldnât decide.
Starting at the University of Michigan was like a breath of fresh air. New people, new environment, new life. Although she missed waking up on a lake, she and her roommate, beautiful and blonde, Bella (if she was going to make friends she may as well start with her roommate, right?), clicked well and decorated their dorm cosy with little lights hanging along the walls and bed frames, a rug to give the place personality and photos on the walls of family, friends and interests. Gave the cold place a bit of warm character. They giggled as they listened to the room across the hall already break out into an argument who-slept-where, they sympathised for the girl who struggled to say goodbye to her family and watched the two boys move in down the hall, y/nâs jaw dropping upon recognising the familiar head of curls.Â
Luke and Dylan were long-time friends, theyâd met back in the USA Hockey Development Camp when they were around fifteen and felt the pressure of new beginnings lift off their shoulders when theyâd found out they were roommates. It was the best thing ever for them, setting up their room as their den, a blue rug, two plush folding chairs with the essentials: speaker, mini fridge, fan and a TV perched on top of one of the deskâs shelves. Theyâd spent most of their time rearranging their room to create maximum space, bickering like a married couple about the little details like no shoes on the rug and which way the desks should face. He and y/n hadnât texted until later that night, Luke thrilled over her being just down the hall but y/n indifferent to it. Once upon a time, she would have been bouncing off the walls but now, it didnât matter that much at all.Â
In the first few weeks of university, you start making friends, join clubs and attend everything you can and go out when you want to with no one telling you when to be home. Y/n met a group of girls when she and Bella attended a social, Luke made friends through hockey. Both ended up back together when the two groups mixed by coincidence one night at some party theyâd found and it was Dylan who brought it up.Â
Y/n and her friends had been standing to the side in the living room of the dimly lit house, red solo cups held to chests and shuffling further away from the speaker at the other end of the room. Dylan weaved through the crowd, Luke, the three other guys, Mark, Ethan and Mackie not far behind him. She had been tipsy and grabbed Lukeâs arm, Dylan immediately stopping to group with the girls.Â
âHey, Lu! Havenât seen you in a while.â She yelled over the music, Luke standing close to her while Ethan, Mackie and Mark joined the little bundle.Â
âHey, y/n/n! Good to see you here.â He replied, dipping down closer to her ear.
Dylanâs eyes widened with his grin, pointing his drink between the two, âOh shit! You know each other?â
âYeah, we grew up together.â She smiled. Something inside Luke almost died that night. Something inside Luke also lit ablaze.Â
âYouâre y/n?! Hughesy talks about you all the time!â Dylan nudged Luke and Luke rolled his eyes, he would always have someone in his life whoâd share his secrets, obviously.Â
Y/n hadnât added to the conversation after that and the group fell into a casual chatter, getting to know each other, that sort of thing. Luke felt the world bite him in the ass, that wedge heâd shoved between them now forced back and he felt like he was at square one all over again.Â
That same night, on their way back to the dorms, Luke had made the clearest statement yet without opening his mouth. Ethan had been talking with her most of the party and since Luke knew her best, wanted advice. But when Ethan asked him about her number and favourite flowers, the youngest Hughesâ eyes could not have shot a dirtier look. Of course, the boys laughed, partially due to the alcohol and partially due to how real Luke seemed. Ethan flinched back, half-laughing out of nerves more than anything but that was the moment the boys realised something was going on. And they would not let Luke live it down.
Luke couldnât bear his reflection sometimes. He had to face a coward and under the surgical white light of his and Dylanâs bathroom, where every feature and crevice of everything he hated just stuck out to laugh at him. Not physically, but all the memories of days he'd spent hyping himself up, ready to ask her out flashed in front of his eyes and he couldnât stop the images of seeing his younger self utterly disappointed in him. He gripped the sink tight, knuckles turning white as he hung his head in shame, his eyes burning hot as they glassed over, a knot in his chest between angry and distraught igniting his tear ducts. He and y/n were part of two different groups with two different schedules, hockey was demanding, she would be with her crowd and when he thought he could finally have her without prying eyes, she was slipping further from his reach. But he wouldnât lose her a second time. He wasnât ready to surrender almost eight years of pining, heâd try just one last time.
It was exciting, it was new, it was refreshing. Weeks of classes, weeks of making new friends and weeks of finally gaining and learning independence. Things were going well for once and she even had her first date as a college student. Tony was a guy she met at a party, he didnât resemble Luke at all and had approached her with smooth talking but lacked the character Luke held. She wasnât sure about that, a cardboard personality but that was why she had agreed to go on a date with him, to learn.Â
Sheâd knocked on Lukeâs dorm on her way through, pushing him into his room abruptly and fixing her hair, Bella was out, and she was in dire need of a second opinion, and despite how the universe played out, Luke was still her most trusted and oldest friend. His eyes widened slightly, once again sheâd quite literally taken his breath away with how gorgeous she looked all dolled up.Â
âDo I look okay?â she asked, panic in her voice.
âUh, yeah.â He fumbled out, like heâd forgotten how to speak entirely.
âThatâs all? Oh God, I look bad, donât I?âÂ
âWhat? No, you look good, Iâm just confused. You going out?â he felt his cheeks warm at his sudden confession, why was it easier to admit that now and not back then?
âIâm going on a date, Lu. Iâm freaking out, what if he doesnât like me? What if I say the wrong thing or say something unfunny?-âÂ
Luke placed his hands on her shoulders, eyes meeting hers and her voice faded out. For a split second she questioned if going on the date was the right choice, but she caught herself, not letting the comfort of his thumbs rubbing her shoulders distract her. â-There isnât a reason why he wouldnât like you, chill. You will be fine, and you are funny, if he doesnât find you funny then heâs boring as fuck. Who is this guy anyway? Whereâs he taking you?â
âThanks,â she relaxed with a smile, he always could make her feel better. âAnd are we really doing this again? His nameâs Tony and I am meeting him at a bar near campus.âÂ
âOkay, you want me to walk you? Which bar-â but before Luke could get any further, sheâd looked at the time and rushed out. He watched her power-walk down the hall before shutting his door roughly, hissing swears through his teeth. Perfect, just perfect, Lukeâs love life was just going so perfect. Whoever this âTonyâ was, he despised him with every fibre in his being.
Dylan opened the bathroom door a crack, peeping out as if he hadnât been eavesdropping the whole time. He didnât grin like usual, his raised an eyebrow as Luke ran his hands down his face and threw himself onto one of the comfy chairs like a ragdoll.Â
âYou wanna talk about it? Fill me in here?â he asked, stepping into the room.
As Luke opened his mouth, someone knocked three times on the door. Dylan answered, revealing Mark, Mackie and Ethan kitted out for the gym. Ushering them in, they stood in front of Luke, like a council waiting for him.Â
âHughesy's pissed,â Dylan told the guys, âLuke, weâre here dude, let it out, brother. Whatâs the deal with you and y/n. You gave Eddy the evils and now youâre slamming doors and swearing your ass off when she goes on a date.â
Luke paused, thought. It wasnât high school anymore; they were all adults. They werenât going to tell everyone, they werenât going to throw it back at him, tease him. He wasnât sure if he wanted to admit it out loud, he already felt like a loser as it was. They were his friends, his brothers.Â
âI like y/n, and I have since we were kids. And Iâm pissed off because Iâm not the guy sheâs going on a date with. Okay?â Luke groaned, the guys breaking into menacing grins and nudging each otherâs arms.
âDude, you could have just said something. Come on, Hughesy, we got you.â Mark laughed, grabbing Luke by the arm and pulling him from the chair. They say the friends you make in university are some of the best friends youâll ever have, and that was the day Luke realised that. If anyone wanted him to be happy, it was them. He wasnât on his own anymore, he wouldnât be in an empty house all the time, he wouldnât have to arrive home and hear the absence of his family. His family were with him all the time now.
Seven oâclock. Seven-thirty. Eight oâclock and Tony wasnât coming. Cars passed, customers entered and exited, the neon lights flickered on and hummed in the dark. The world just passed by. Y/n had never felt more humbled in her life, more embarrassed. To think that he had an interest in her was too ambitious. How could someone do that? Just leave someone outside the bar for an hour with no text or apology. She sat on the curb with her knees to her chest, mascara running down her cheeks waiting for the miracle that he showed his face, and it was an innocent delay. Maybe he got caught up? Maybe he was late from somewhere? Why was she waiting, making excuses for him? But she still waited until the evening faded into the night. She waited on that curb, drained of all feeling, limbs heavy and even her stomach felt void of anything, she didnât feel like walking back to her dorm, it may as well have been a walk of shame while everyone laughed at how hopeful she had been. No matter what she did, who it was, she was always waiting.
The Yost rink took hockey seriously, team rooms for everything. Gym, common, kitchen, locker room, showers, everything for aspiring professional NHL stars. The guys had started their fixed routine advised by the coaches, an intense gym routine, yes, but anything for hockey. Luke had taken a break from weights, wiping his face with his towel and taking a breather when heâd overheard the conversation, stopped dead in his tracks as the words almost echoed around the room. He didnât want to have to look at the guy, but did he really have to play on the same team as him too? The worst part was it wasnât just Luke hearing the conversation, Dylan and Mackie had paused their music to listen in, eyes switching between each other and at Luke, whose jaw clenched tight, and gaze couldnât have been sharper.Â
âArenât you supposed to be on that date?â Tonyâs friend asked, leaning against the treadmill Tony jogged on.
âHuh? With who?âÂ
âYâknow, the chick from the party? The one who wore that USA Hockey sweatshirt on move-in day? Wonder whose dick she sucked for that.â His friend continued, âMan, she was cute.â
Lukeâs blood boiled and his breathing deepened. He bit his tongue; it took everything in him to not bite into both their throats. She didnât have to suck his dick to get the sweatshirt, he gave it to her before that, because he cared.
âOh yeah, forgot about that. Sheâs probably still waiting for me. Leave now and you might catch her.â
Luke huffed, turning on his heel and storming out the gym, scrambling in his pocket for his phone. Tony and his friend snapped their heads to his sudden exit, catching the eyes of Dylan and Mackie who shook their heads in disappointment before turning back to what they were doing. Tony had no idea he had an enemy until then.Â
He burst out the gym doors into the hallway, pacing up and down with his fingers tangled in his hair, phone pressed to his ear but every attempt going to voicemail. He gave up texting, he could send a hundred texts, and she wouldnât see them anyway, her phone was always on silent but with enough hope, she may see him call.Â
Goosebumps rose along y/nâs arms, the autumn breeze catching up to her and perhaps she should have worn a jacket after all. She thought about getting up and heading back to her dorm, but the energy to do so had been sucked from her, limbs feeling heavy, and heart shattered. The longer sheâd sat there, the more she realised she wasnât upset about Tony, it was being stood up. He really did not want to see her that badly after all. Watching the same customers walk out the bar that she watched walk in, she pulled her phone out, lockscreen filled with Lukeâs contact and five missed calls. What was so important that he had to call now? Why was she suddenly so popular with him again? Just as she scoffed and went to slide her phone into her back pocket, his name flashed again, for the sixth call. Her thumb hovered over the accept button, biting her lip with nerves crawling in her stomach.
âWhy werenât you picking up? Where are you?â His voice was panicked, and she could hear how fast his breathing was through the speaker.Â
âSorry, was too busy sucking off Ohio Stateâs hockey team.â Her voice clipped, running her nail over her jeans, tears welling in her eyes and reactivating her mascara, if there was any still left on her lashes.
âHaha, so funny.â He laughed sarcastically, âWhere are you?âÂ
âWhy do you care suddenly? Youâll probably just laugh in my face anyway.â
âFucking God, y/n/n. Where are you?â
She flinched slightly at his raised voice, jolting her phone from her ear before replying with a sulky pout, âDiabloâs, but Iâll probably come back soon.â
He hung up, stuffing his phone back into his pocket and bolting out Yost without thinking about anything else. The only thought was getting y/n back safely before the worst happened. What was she thinking? She should've started walking the second Tony failed to arrive, before it was dark. His jogging gradually shifted into a run, Diabloâs wasnât more than fifteen minutes away from campus, and he was aware that he looked a little crazy running with the bare minimum of usual running gear but that wasnât the issue. He would have never stood her up like that, he should have walked her to the bar in the first place and waited until he arrived. He shouldâve, he shouldâve but he didnât. Heâd been harbouring his feelings for so long, yet he couldnât even provide something as minimal as a walk, but he wouldnât let her sit outside a bar because of some shitty guy.Â
Y/n stretched her legs in front of her, eyes locked on her shoes as her ears tuned the world out, letting it pass by slowly before she thought about getting up. She knew exactly what she was doing. Fallen into yet another trap set her heart, she was waiting for Luke. Again. If it werenât for the familiar maize and navy trainers appearing in front of her, she wouldâve punished herself for even considering that Luke may have cared about her in the slightest. Slowly, she tilted her chin up: the gym shorts, the compression shirt, the flushed cheeks and unruly curls from the wind. What was once a heavy anvil on her shoulders ascended, taking the blues out from her body and replacing them with that spark. That electric spark that made her limbs all tingly with life and energy. Lukeâs eyes softened at her, although his fears had been wiped, she was okay, but Tony made her cry. That time and effort sheâd put in had ran down her cheeks and if he wasnât so fuelled with captivation, he wouldâve lost his temper. But she was his serenity, always had been.
âYou came.â She squeaked, doe eyes peering up at him lovingly.
âOf course I did.â Luke panted, taking her by the hands and pulling her to her feet. He didnât let go for a while, neither did she. His hands were warm, and she remembered how safe they always made her feel, how heâd always have his arm draped over the back of her seat during the summer, how she felt like the only girl in the world when their eyes met. âCome on, Iâll walk you back.âÂ
It wasnât a long walk back, but neither was it romantic. Luke had his hands in his pockets and y/nâs in hers but the distance between them couldnât have been closer, like two magnets once again, hauling back into each other. When they had taken the fifteen-minute walk back to their dorm block, he walked with her all the way until they stood outside her door and only they could somehow make it awkward.Â
They gave each other a small nod, as if to give a silent goodbye until y/n span on her heel, her arms winding around his torso against her better judgement. He blinked twice and froze, he couldnât remember the last time sheâd hugged him so tight, she fit like a glove, and heâd forgotten how much he felt like he belonged somewhere, with someone when in her arms. He melted into her, arms wrapping around her shoulders and resting his lips to the top of her hair. The violent urge to kiss her, only a peck but he knew that if he kissed her once, itâd lead to more. It always did.Â
Pulling away, she tilted her head up at him, hands holding the sides of his shirt while his glid to the tops of her shoulders. The silence thick, eyes searching for something, rolling tapes of lost memories theyâd tried to forget: the treehouse, the boat, every second they even considered that they had a chance. Lukeâs hands cupped her jaw, thumbs caressing over her cheekbones as he licked his lips. Her grip tightened, mouth parting and leaning onto her tiptoes while he dipped down, breaths tying together, noses bumping. He said he wouldnât do it, she said she didnât want to do it but in the end all they ever ended up doing was intertwining back into each other. Their lips ghosted, eyelashes fluttering against their cheeks until lips grazed in the slightest.Â
The reality of the situation crashed down upon her heavily, like getting caught in a hailstorm. She was a strong soldier, she could resist. Everything would circle back like it always did. They would kiss, things would be fine and then heâd disappear. If it can happen once, it can happen again, and again and again until one of them stopped the chase. Luke would just hurt her again; she would just look for guys to fill the hole in her heart he made when he would leave, and the self-destruction had to stop at some point. Her eyes snapped open, and she nudged him back lightly, âNo. I-I canât do this, Lu.âÂ
Lukeâs world darkened, a hollow sorrow washing through him as he let her push him away. Pathetically, he looked at her, a pleading guilt jabbing him in the stomach as his hands yearned to reach out for her. They hung by his sides instead and she inhaled deeply, shakily.
âI don't get it. One minute Iâm everything to you and the next itâs like I donât existâŚyou keep coming back at random times like nothingâs happened, at times when I think that you donât want me anymoreâŚitâs just so- so confusing! I feel like Iâm always waiting on you to make up your mind, Luke.â She pinched the bridge of her nose, the defeat rising inside her. âYou like me and then you donât and I canât keep playing cat and mouse all the time. Thank you for picking me up and looking out for me, but until youâve figured out what you want, please leave me be.âÂ
 Like that, she was gone. Turned away and retreated to her dorm, leaving him standing like a lost puppy in the hallway. He didnât want to cry, not there at least but how heâd managed to make things worse, he couldnât say. All he knew is that she was right, and that was the part that hit him the hardest. He knew his answer, he knew he did want her and was going to give them one last chance, but she didnât know that. From her perspective, he was just getting close to running away, hoping sheâd chase him back but now she wasnât. The next time theyâd meet would either be the last of everything they built, or the start of something new.
When y/n stepped into her dorm looking like sheâd been through several horrendous break-ups and four bushes backwards, Bella jolted up from her bed, scrambling out her covers. Y/n told her everything. Everything from her mess with Luke to Tony ditching her. The good, the bad and the ugly about the whole story and while Bella was pissed about the latter, even she could see Luke in a battle of his own.Â
âHave you ever considered that LukeâsâŚyâknowâŚscared?â Bella asked, leaning against the bathroom door frame, eyes meeting y/nâs in the mirror as she scrubbed the mascara from her face.Â
As if she couldnât have made the ordeal any messier than it was, she feared she just had out of her own borderline selfishness. She hadnât considered his side of the story. Ever.
One intensely lit house with LED light strips covering the walls, pulsing and flashing changing colours in beat with the music blaring through the speakers, two girls weaved their way through a sea of bodies into the kitchen, five boys hovering in the living room, making conversation with sophomores in the frat.Â
Their first frat party as freshmen and the nerves were skyrocketing. The only reason y/n and Bella went was because Dylan had invited y/n, and she begged Bella to tag along since it would be a fun experience and so she didnât have to go alone. So far, so good. Theyâd lost count of how many drinks theyâd poured, shots taken, people spoken to, they were just girls.Â
The boys were on a mission. Well, Luke was, the boys were just orchestrating events and giving Luke multiple pep-talks about it being ânow or neverâ. They were right, of course. Luke had just over a week of no contact, a week for staring at his reflection in the mirror, lying in bed at night staring at the ceiling, thinking, planning, anticipating and now it would all stop.Â
Ethan lined up his shot, ping pong ball loosely held between his fingers, and he released, biting his lip as the ball bounced into the opposing teamâs cup. The boys cheered, throwing each other into fist bumps and bro-hugs, a few girls applauding around them. Y/n and Bella stood within that surrounding crowd, Mark wiggling them to the front as if they were VIPs, part of their group. When Lukeâs turn came around, she noticed the fan club heâd gained, pretty girls giggling and whispering between each other, cheering when Lukeâs shot landed in the cup. She ran her tongue over her top teeth, a lethal glare on the girls as they tried to loop their arms around Lukeâs, but her muscles relaxed seeing Dylan and Mackie stand beside him, ushering the girls back.Â
Bella nudged her, leaning over to murmur in her ear, âSomething tells me heâs made up his mind.â
Y/n opened her mouth, but Mark stumbled over his feet in front of them, asking if they fancied another drink (of course they did) and taking both their wrists gently with a goofy grin on his face, leading them through the people, brushing past a couple guys in the doorway whose eyes followed them towards the back corner of the kitchen, where the rest of the guys had managed to claim. Mark was sweet, baby faced and a ball of sunshine with contagious energy, ensuring they were in the circle securely. He ushered y/n between himself and Luke, Bella on the other side with Dylan and Mackie but no matter how tucked away she was in the boys, the looming gaze of someone else clawed at her.Â
Ten minutes passed, the group still in a deep conversation amongst themselves and she peered back over her shoulder again, the - presumably older guy, maybe a senior - still watching her every move like a hawk, leaning into his friend and pointing at her with smirks. Thereâs nothing more terrifying in a womanâs life than knowing youâre being watched because being watched means thereâs a further plan. If she had known she was being watched at the carnival, she could have moved somewhere else but now, she did know she was being watched and her legs paralysed, staying where she was would keep her safe. But she wanted to run, run home, run to her bed, run to her dorm where she couldnât be found, and security cameras lined the halls. The only security blanket keeping her heart from palpitating was Mark and Luke beside her, yet the guy didnât seem bothered by that at all.
There were too many people to run, the kitchen too crowded to slip away without getting caught by him but any longer being stared down by the guy and tears may have fallen, making the whole situation worse. Until she stepped to the side, bumping into a familiar arm. An arm that snaked around her torso and hand settled on her hip, tucking her into his side while he casually continued his conversation with Dylan. He held her close so naturally as if embedded into his autopilot, an instinct. Excitement bubbled in her stomach, exploding in her chest when Luke kissed her hair, watching the guy from across the room disappear from his peripheral vision. The guy may have been watching y/n, but Luke had been watching the guy the entire time, flashbacks from the carnival haunting him. Even if she were to shove him away, the least he could do was keep her safe from the start this time. Y/n didnât shove him away, she leant into him like putty melding to his form, if she was with him, all the nerves disintegrated.Â
âNo, thatâs what Iâm saying!â Ethanâs voice raised above, turning from Mark as he turned to the rest of the group, âOkay, is anyone else down for shots? I have this spinner game.âÂ
In a group agreement, Ethan pulled his phone out, loading up said spinner game and showing his screen. The spinner had different shots on a wheel, from tequila to whiskey to rum to vodka to body shots, the aim to spin and take whatever the arrow landed on. Ethan spun first, resulting in his fate being sealed by whatever whiskey they found lying around the counters. The shot burned unpleasantly down his throat, but anything for a good time. Mackie spun next, taking a dance with tequila and if he had learnt something that night, it was that him and tequila were not fated to be lovers. Both Dylan and Bella took their vodka shots with their arms intertwined with each other. Luke took his turn, unbothered by what his result was until the arrow landed on a body shot. He shook his head smiling, the guys allowing him to choose his partner.Â
Y/n tugged on his t-shirt, gesturing her head towards the island counter behind Mark and Ethan. The group grinned, a concoction of âooohâ and âyeahâ filling the corner as she hoisted herself onto the marble, Luke standing between her legs and receiving his tequila shot from Dylan. She tugged the strap of her tank top over her shoulder slightly, giving Luke enough room to sprinkle the line of salt on the crook of her neck while Mark returned with a slice of lime. Lukeâs eyes met hers, giving her a look of reassurance, a kind look asking her if she was all right. She licked her lips, that familiar coquettish look blazing back at him just like in the treehouse last summer. Tequila burned down his throat, tongue licking the salt from her neck, scenarios of slow and wet kisses across the skin, his teeth sinking into her tearing through her imagination, y/n struggling to keep quiet but when his mouth had found her sweet spot like that, she wanted nothing more than for him to devour her then and there.Â
He couldnât have cared less about the salt, his face belonged buried in her neck and if he could rewind the clock just to repeat his actions then he would have. His hands steadied by her sides, heat flushing to his neck and the lime he was supposed to take next may as well have never existed. The opportunity was there, he could finally show her his decision, how he felt and what he wanted. The audience around them didnât matter, to him, it was just him and y/n in some random fratâs kitchen, a simple body shot doing Godâs work but Ethan rigging the game earning the MVP award for the night. He emerged from her neck, parting his lips slightly and falling weak to her and he was done with keeping her waiting.Â
Pulling the lime from her lips, he tossed it aside, both hands cupping her jaw, the world stopping entirely when their lips met hastily. He kissed her like every time before, heavy and with meaning, like it screamed a thousand different tequila flavoured ways to convey his feelings. Her hands delicately placed themselves over his, keeping him close, keeping him in and pressed into her, shockwaves over her body and she melted into him with parting lips. Their friends cheered and hooted, clinking their shot glasses together but it fell deaf upon Luke and y/n, their tongues tangled in a bruising, breathless kiss until they had to pull away for air. His lips pulled into a grin, thumbs soothing over her cheeks as her eyes slowly widened with a smile spreading across her face.Â
Luke dipped closer to her ear, hands falling to her hips and murmured, âItâs always been you.âÂ
âLetâs go somewhere quieter-â she turned her head towards him, lips close to his ear, but Dylan slapped Lukeâs back and yelled something about their room being off limits for the night as he passed, Bella dragging him through the kitchen.Â
Lukeâs eyebrows raised upon initially entering y/nâs room, a homely feeling embracing him when she switched the fairy lights on, and they ditched their shoes next to the door. Y/n waved him over to her bed, her back against the headboard and he followed, squeezing next to her, arm wrapping around her shoulders and tucking her into his chest. They knew they owed each other a talk, their sides of the story, the rise and the fall. Luke needed to explain, and she needed to confess, the longer they pretended like it wasnât eating them alive the thicker that wedge between them became.
âI didnât like Cameron at all, I only went out with him to make you jealous. I thought youâd get protectiveâŚâ she said, Luke humming in acknowledgement, âI just wanted that little confirmation that I mattered.â
âYeah, it worked. But you always mattered, sâwhy Iâve been trying all this time to ask you out.â He mumbled, his voice seductively low, rumbling through his chest.
âThen what were you gonna say at the end of summer, because I know it wasnât supposed to be about the beach.âÂ
Luke inhaled deeply, his hand snaking to her waist and settling on her hip, âI was gonna ask you on a date to the arcade we loved as kidsâŚbut then I freaked out and got scared againâŚâÂ
âWhy were you scared, Lu? What was there to be scared of?â She couldnât get the pieces to click, and Luke grew frustrated, admitting things was not an easy job.Â
âY/n, Iâve loved you my entire life, everything was to be scared of. I thought you didnât like kissing me, then you went on a date with what's-his-face, then Cameron and somewhere between there I donât know, I thought it was over for me, that we were just friends. I thought Iâd lost you after all those years of trying.â He rambled, the pent-up words falling from his mouth, but he didnât sound annoyed, not once. If anything, the weight that latched itself onto Lukeâs shoulders lifted the more he rambled.Â
She had been right; she hadnât thought about his perspective on everything. Heâd done nothing but put her first, hold her hand, kiss her, accompany her, rescue her, be the boyfriend she never had, and she threw him to the side for some guy as if he never mattered. Then wondered why he was so far away. Perhaps she wouldâve reacted the same, after all, seeing someone you love with another isnât a burden easy to bear. Guilt choked her hard, he knew all along what he wanted, and sheâd just made it difficult to confess. Really shitty but she was part of the problem Luke battled.
âYou never lost me, Lu,â with glossy eyes and a delicate touch to his jaw, she turned his head to face her, âweâve been close for as long as I can remember.â
âThatâs why I was scared. I canât just be friends with you and last summer we werenât just friends, y/n. Last summer meant everything to me and I really hoped youâd be my girl and well, I fucked that up.â His eyes flickered to her lips, he should have felt bad as tears welled in her eyes, but he finally, with the liquid courage from earlier, could get the words out how he wanted.Â
Her lip quivered, hand cupping the nape of his neck and her thumb leaving feathery touches over his jaw, a tear breaking through and slipping down her cheek, âMe too. Is there a chanceâŚI can still be your girlfriend?â
âYou think I kissed you for shits and giggles?â He leaned in, half on his own and half with the prompt of her pulling him closer, pressing their lips together tentatively, a warmth of familiarity blooming through them like flowers in their lungs. But those flowers werenât choking them anymore, they weaved between their ribcages and bones like a garden of bliss and beauty, pollinating their hearts with desire.Â
He licked across her bottom lip, tongue finding hers in a languid rhythm while his free hand wrapped around her thigh, pulling her over to straddle his lap. Y/n moaned into the kiss, relaxing under his hands gliding over every inch of her waist and back, pressing her body into his with lips disconnecting with strings of saliva between them. He smothered her neck in electrifying butterfly kisses, from her ear down to the crook of her neck to that sweet spot heâd found earlier, nipping at the skin until her fingers laced in his curls, tugging and drawing a deep, raw groan from his chest.Â
Lukeâs hands, hot and calloused, snuck under her top, slowly following the natural curve of her spine and waist, the fabric rising the further he explored, thumbs teasing her underside of her breasts along the lace of her bra. Lace. The concept of y/n wearing lace underwear sent shivers down his spine, heat to his dick and his hips bucked up as if a reflex, but it wasnât the first time heâd imagined it. A high-pitched whimper escaped her lips, little sparks flushing over her skin the further her top seemed to hike up her body until Luke bunched the fabric at her chest, pulling it over her head and tossing it to the end of her bed, his warm lips attacking her collarbones with little nips disguised by kisses before sucking pink blossoms along her skin to her tits, his large hands cupping and kneading.Â
âNo fair,â her fingers tugged at the back of his t-shirt, clumsily pulling it up his back. He let out a low chuckle into her skin before sitting straight, discarding the clothing over his head and setting his hands on her waist. Sheâd seen him hundreds of times before, but this was different, this was private. âSo fucking pretty, Lu. Just wannaâŚâ
âJust wanna what?â he purred, leaning back into the headboard and adjusting his hips up against her, his jeans failing to hide his solid cock bumping her crotch. âIf youâre gonna talk dirty to me, you gotta use your words, pretty girl. I donât know what you want me to do.âÂ
She gasped, pussy fluttering at the friction and her dreamy gaze brought his cocky smirk back to his lips. Lukeâs hands gripped her hips tighter, guiding them to roll over his dick once more, twice more, until her nails dug into his shoulders for stability, inner core burning like fire with every brush against her clit, panties sticking to her folds in ways that disgraced her dignity. It felt so good, she felt good, just dry humping alone had her jaw slacking and little pants of air slipping through her lips all while Luke tilted his head back, grinning ear to ear with his eyes closed, cock throbbing painfully. He wouldnât have cared if he came right then and there, in his boxers that he would sure have to wear in the morning.Â
She took his hands off her hips, gliding them up her body until they reached her back, his fingers meeting the clasp of her bra as she slid the straps over her shoulders, a sultry yet so encouraging look smeared across her face. He struggled slightly with the clasp, but her hands cupping his face rid of the embarrassment before it had even hit, the underwear falling from her body and discarded to the floor. Luke licked his lips, her hands finding their way to his and placing them over her tits, an invitation to explore how he pleased. His ears tinted pink again, eyes unable to leave the view of his hands timidly groping her chest and every thought heâd been having up until that moment blanked. Soft, so soft and squishy, God he could do that forever, sleep on them until the end of time. He brushed his thumbs over her nipples, her back arching into him and y/n let out an airy whimper, tilting her head back.Â
âSo fuckinâ pretty, y/n,â he hummed, one hand lying flat on her back as he dipped down, pressing wet kisses to her tit, taking the peak between his lips and swirling his tongue leisurely around her nipple. His other hand wrapped around her other breast, groping and squishing it, pinching the nipple between his fingers until her airy whimpers increased into lewd cries of his name, a whirling warmth in her throbbing cunt. He released her - now wet - tit, breathing heavily with disbelief. Heâd just sucked his childhood crush, long-time friendâs tit, in her room and she was really half naked on his lap, definitely feeling how hard he was against her pussy, and he loved every second of this animalistic yearning coursing through him.
Y/nâs hands trailed down his chest, over every dip and definition of his muscles until they fumbled with his belt, mind becoming hazy at the memory of the way she looked at him the last time sheâd taken him in her mouth, the pleasant challenge of getting his tip to hit the back of her throat, his whimpering and begging replaying in her ears. Sliding backwards down his legs, she barely got her mouth anywhere near his cock before his fingers wrapped around her neck, pressing firmly on the sides and pulling her back up to his eye level, her heart pulsing in her ears with the condescending look on his face. He slotted his mouth on hers to find her tongue again, saliva pooling at the corner of their lips and they didnât hate it. She shouldnât have enjoyed the compression as much as she did, but his hands were so much bigger on her body, like he could crush her and her eyes threatened to roll to the back of her head, a strained moan gasping out.Â
âPlease,â she whined between kisses, âtaste so good, so big, need you.â
âNuh-uh, itâs my turn.â He looked down at her before releasing her throat, winding an arm around her and flipping her onto her back underneath him. He painted her body with gentle kisses, from the valley of her breasts, down her stomach to the top of her shorts, smoothly unbuttoning them and pulling the zip down with his teeth, âBeen thinkinâ about how you taste. Can I?â
He peered up at her through his eyelashes, watching y/n prop herself onto her elbows and lick her lips. She paused, the silence comfortable as he waited for her consent, âYeah, pleaseâŚthis is justâŚnever done this before.âÂ
Luke kissed her stomach before sitting onto his knees, giving her a warm, reassuring smile before hooking his fingers around the waist of her shorts, âNeither. Weâll figure it out, okay?âÂ
She nodded, smiling, lifting her hips and letting him slide the clothing down her legs and ditching them somewhere on the floor. He straddled back over her, running his hands over her bare legs before dipping down to place a hot kiss on her clothed clit, sparks skimming over his body by how sopping her panties were.Â
She whimpered quietly, watching him begin to lower himself before she placed her foot onto his shoulder, pushing him back onto his knees, head lulling into her shoulder with a desperate tint in her eyes, âJeans, off.â
The corner of his lips tugged upwards as he slid off the bed, kicking his jeans and socks off and crawling back over her, settling between her legs again. His fingers re-hooked around her waistband, gliding her panties down her legs leaving tingles like feathers along the skin in their wake before she removed her legs from them one by one. He threw of leg over his shoulders, laying on his stomach and left slow kisses along her inner thigh, nipping at the skin to pull a squeal from her and sucking over the spot until a purple blotch marked. One hand lay splayed over her lower stomach, his other holding her other leg slightly apart, enough to catch a view of her glistening folds and give him room to spread them open with his thumb.Â
âFuck, gonna need you to use your words here, pretty girl.â His voice was gruff, breath hitting her sensitivity, and she lulled her head back, readjusting herself on her elbows because there was no way she would miss watching him devour her. His thumb circled her clit dubiously, eyes peeking up at her and even though the sensation didnât hit just right yet, having any sort of attention to a virgin clit still sent pleasure to her head.
âLittle firmer, little faster-oh!â she explained, Luke following her instructions as she spoke until the sensation hit her like a brick, jolting through her, jaw falling slack, âLike that, Lu, shit.â
He grinned, running his other thumb through her folds, spreading the slick before taking his thumb into his mouth, eyes locked into hers, licking and relishing in the way she tasted and humming into the heaven that consumed him. Sinking lower into her mattress, he drew his hand away from her clit, hand pressing down on her stomach and other wrapping her thigh around his shoulder, tongue flicking at her bundle of nerves, small kisses, nipping, sucking until she raked her fingers through his curls, pushing him into her cunt. He ran his tongue through her folds, lapping at the pussy juices without a care about how loud he was being, nose bumping into her clit, her jaw falling agape and helpless mewls slipped through her lips as she bucked her hips up pathetically. He could have eaten her out all day, his new favourite place to hide that graced him with the most beautiful, pornographic noises from his favourite person. He couldnât help himself, there was too much ecstasy intoxicating him that he barely noticed himself rutting his cock into the mattress the hungrier he dipped into her.
He pulled back momentarily, lips vibrating against her cunt that had her wines drawn-out and fingers tugging at his curls in a way that tore guttural groans from him, âSuch a pretty fuckinâ pussy, all fuckinâ mine.âÂ
He dove back in, hands pinning her to the bed and plunging his tongue into her, moaning against her folds so harsh they reverberated through her body, making every hair stand on end. He lifted his head up, middle finger tracing through her folds and sliding inside her easily, a wave of fire washing over her, and his ring finger entered alongside, Luke pumping them in precise and careful motions while watching the way her face contorted with pleasure.Â
âThatâs it, good girl,â he cooed, his name falling from her mouth like a song. He curled his fingers, realising heâd hit the right spot when her breath hitched and whimpered out, âso loud fâme, thatâs it, taking my fingers so well.â
âThere, right there, Luke! Donât stop!âÂ
His fingers thrusted in and out of her with a rhythm, cherishing the warmth and completely obsessed how she stretched out for him, biting his lip and petting her g-spot as she squirmed, his hand on her stomach keeping her still. He drew his fingers out, taking them into his mouth, eyes almost fluttering closed at the taste until he dove straight back into her pussy, messily letting his tongue work its magic with his nose hitting her clit with each dip.
âLu! Luke, please Luke,â she sobbed out desperately, free hand gripping the bedsheets. She couldnât believe heâd never gone down on a woman before, he ate her like a starved man, so many pleasures triggering at once, her body and mind completely short-circuited, and she was left with filthy whines and incoherent sentences. âGonna cum, let me cum, please-â
Her words dissipated into the air, eyes rolling back as the brutality of his tongue lapped and assaulted mercilessly, arousal coating his chin as he attempted to pull her impossibly closer. Heâd never thought heâd be so pussydrunk on someone before, especially going in with only the knowledge his friends had given him after many late-night conversations in random car parks of fast-food restaurants. The coil in her stomach tightened, eyes squeezing shut and she was so close to that final release until cold air fanned her pussy. Eyes snapping open, she whipped her head forward to see Luke staring at her with wild eyes, arousal dripping from his chin and her fingers slipped from his hair as he sat on his knees, her legs falling and wrapping around his hips as he wiped his face with his hand, licking the excess from his fingers.Â
âWhyâd you stop? I was so close.â She whined, but trailed off the further he tugged his boxers off, cock springing free, and he hovered over her, dipping down to kiss her softly, trailing from her lips, along her cheek to the shell of her ear.
âWant you to cum on my cock,â he purred, latching his teeth onto her collarbone, sucking until heâd left his mark, teasing her cunt by running his tip through her folds until her arms wrapped around his back, nails digging into the flexed muscles.
âFuck, need you inside me, Lu,â she said in a small voice, unable to take the teasing anymore with a throbbing pussy and desperate need to be filled up, âmâon the pill, please, fuck me.â
âSsh, I got you,â he murmured, inching his cock in painfully slow but the last thing he wanted was to hurt her. Luke groaned into her shoulder, every vein, every nerve caressing her warm walls the further she swallowed his size. God, she felt so perfect, suited for him and for a moment he thought sheâd struggle to take him until something about imagining the bulge in her stomach as she tried to take him made his cock twitch. Once he bottomed out, their lips met for a long kiss, her tongue darting into his mouth and muffling her moans as she adjusted to his size, core burning at how he stuffed her full and she craved more.Â
Y/nâs nails massaged his scalp, tugging gently, âYou can move,â she whispered.
He steadied his biceps either side of her head, rocking his hips back and forth languidly like she was made of glass until the little high-pitched whimpers sank into his skin, spurring him to increase his pace, feeling her tits bounce against his chest with every push in. Sweat formed on his forehead, curls beginning to stick as he huffed hot air into the crook of her neck.
âSo tight, y/n, feel so fuckinâ good,â his lips laced her neck in sloppy kisses before sitting on his knees, hands on her hips in a vice grip as he drilled into her, gradually thrusting harder and faster the more his eyes locked on the bulge in her lower stomach. His splayed hand over it, a deep chuckle rumbling in his chest, âso fuckinâ tight nâ look at that.â
âFeels sâgood!â she cried, âOh- yes, Lu, yes.â
Her nails dug into the sheets, fisting them as Luke snapped his hips, euphoria erratically zapping him as he watched the way his cock bulged and dipped with his thrusting, her walls clenching around him. She wailed out an erotic moan, mind fogging and the only sense working in her system being the way she could feel his cock pulse inside her, dragging along her walls and stuffing her full like he was meant to.Â
âYou feel me, babe? Feel how fuckinâ well your pretty pussy takes me?â A carnal desire controlled him like a puppet, the deeper he slammed his dick into her, the louder the slapping of skins and he leaned back down over her, feeling her arms struggle to embrace his much larger body and nails clawing angry marks into his skin as if marking her territory. He could get used it, no one else could make him feel the way she did. No one could make him want to fuck her with every drop of love and affection he had in him other than y/n. He wasnât driving into her because he was horny, he wanted to be closer, feel purpose and comfort with being vulnerable and exposed and it just happened to be the most pervertedly enthralling experience of his life.Â
âL-Lu! Mâgonna c..cum.â she panted, letting drawn-out, wanton moans bounce off her dorm room walls the deeper he plunged his cock into her, âSo big- let me cum, please.â
âMe too, pretty, me too.â He planted a kiss to her forehead, ignoring the salty sweat coating his tastebuds, he couldnât have cared less, it wasnât like he wasnât drenched in sticky sweat too.Â
She began to fall limp, her grip on him loosening as her eyes rolled to the back of her head, the coil in her stomach unable to get any tighter and on its last legs. She didnât want the high to end, the volume of the world starting to cut to white noise and vision blurry, Lukeâs stuttering thrusts tearing an orgasm through her while he fucked her through his own, white, creamy release circling the base of his cock as his rutting slowed to a stop. He collapsed onto her chest, buring his face into her neck and panting falling in sync with hers.Â
He pulled out, wiping the leaking cum from her thighs with his finger and taking in the last juices before nestling into her breasts. His eyes fell heavy when her fingers carded through his curls and with the little energy he had left, he kissed her cheek, âYou did so well for me, such a good girl. Pretty fuckinâ noises just fâme.â
They lay in silence to muster up their energy, breathing patterns in sync, y/n tracing patterns over his back and Luke periodically leaving chaste kisses on her collarbone. The world couldnât have been more perfect, even if their skins stuck together grossly, even if they had to sleep in cum-stained sheets for the night, he planned to help with cleaning those in the morning anyway. Y/nâs heart didnât race with him anymore, it slowed with serenity of finally having a person, finally being able to breathe around him. There was truly no greater feeling than the tranquillity of devotion blooming through two lovers.Â
Y/n tapped his back lightly, indicating that she needed to get up. He weakly crawled off, helping her by the hand and following her to her bathroom. They didnât bother with privacy while she peed, theyâd just had sex, what was there to hide now? What Luke did do, was wet a cloth y/n had pointed to him and do his best do wipe up any excess release off the mattress, highly aware that most if it would have dried by that point.
âLu?â she called out quietly, poking her head from the bathroom. He turned his head, calmly, âYou showering now or in the morning?âÂ
Something so simple, so domestic had his heart melting inside his chest, âIâll go after you.â
She smiled, disappearing back into the bathroom. He picked up his clothes, folding them and placing them onto her desk chair. He folded her clothes next, hanging them on the back of her chair and pulling her pyjamas out from under her pillow, where she always put pyjamas, no matter where she was. Lukeâs mind slowly functioned like normal again, the high of sex wearing down yet still giddy in his system. After years of pining, failing, chasing, crying, they finally fell into place. Was it worth it? Yeah, maybe. Was there an easier way? Absolutely, but he was younger then, scared and stupid. It didnât matter anymore, he had his girl, and he loved her more than anything.
Y/n stirred, sleepy eyes opening to a weight on her chest, a grounding weight with long, unruly curls brushing against her lips ever so slightly, one palm cupped over her breast with his ear pressed to the other. Lukeâs other arm managed to wind itself around her waist, trapped between the curve of her back and the mattress, one of her hands gently stroking through his hair and the other tracing the red scratch marks along his bare back. His breathing heavy but his face so peaceful and she smiled to herself. No, she didnât think heâd run off before sheâd woken up but she had entered university thinking it wouldnât be him in her bed at all, but she was elated that it was. There wasnât a better sight to see at eight in the morning.Â
Lukeâs eyes fluttered open, groaning deeply at his hair being played with and he nuzzled into her chest. He rasped, morning voice deep and husky, âMorning, beautiful.âÂ
âGood morning, pretty boy.â She smiled, pushing hair off his forehead. She wanted to wake up like that every day, tangled with Luke, him being the first person she saw, listened to. Even if he was much larger than she was, the pressure of him laying on her body was comforting, domestic even.
He shuffled around, removing his arm from around her waist, letting the blood flow back through it before propping himself onto his elbows. His eyes scanned her features, her sleepy eyes, tousled hair, the red bites on her collarbones and his lips pulled into a beatific and lazy grin.
âWhat are you smiling about?â she asked, his smile transferred to her infectiously and she cupped his cheek.Â
âThinkinâ about how much I love you, sâall.âÂ
Y/nâs chest warmed, fireworks exploding at her loverboy gazing at her with awe glazed over his eyes, the words falling onto her ears feeling right, bright and fresh like the first time the sun shines in the spring and all the new life begins.Â
âI love you too,â she kissed his forehead, interrupted by his stomach rumbling, âbreakfast?â
He threw back the duvet, scrambling off her and sighing at his clothes he folded on the chair, y/n shuffling around behind him before handing him his USA Hockey sweatshirt and a pair of shorts heâd left at herâs over the summer. He slipped his phone from his jeans pocket, how it had managed to stay tucked in there was beyond his knowledge and how it still had twenty-percent of battery was also a question for the deities above.Â
Luke almost dropped his phone when two arms wrapped around his torso from behind, his cheeks burning from smiling and his stomach fluttering, âThe guys wanna debrief in the dining hall.â
âMmmâkay, but you know theyâre gonna ask where we went last night, right? What do we say?â she peppered his back with kisses until he spun around, her arms still looped around his torso but now he could take her face into his hands.
âAs if theyâd remember, theyâd be lucky to remember anything after doing shots.â He laughed, planting a kiss to her hair.Â
Luke had been right. The boys and Bella all sat at one of the tables, coffees and bowls of cereals and plates of toast being poked at with hands cradling heads, hoods pulled over. Luke and y/n joined them, their own breakfast in front of them and slightly perkier than their friends.
âYou guys look rough, long night?â Luke quipped, shoving cereal into his mouth. He didnât feel too bad, but by the time heâd kissed y/n on the counter heâd sobered up.Â
âBro donât even go there,â Mark grumbled, his face pale, âthe last thing I remember is Ethan asking to do shots and beyond that is blank. Woke up on the floor in last nightâs clothes.âÂ
âHow the fuck are you okay, man? You were on beer and tequila!â Dylan complained, hoodie pulled high up his neck and drawstrings pulled tight, his hair dishevelled still.Â
âNo, no, thereâs a more important question,â Mackie waved his spoon around at the group, giving Bella an encouraging side-eye, who kicked Ethan under the table.
âOw, shit-â he hissed, but eventually catching the others drift. Y/n gulped, her breathing becoming shaky, and Lukeâs hand found her knee, thumb caressing it softly as all eyes fell to the pair. What was she supposed to say now, anxiety fizzled in her stomach and Lukeâs chest tightened. No, they werenât ashamed but itâs not something you outwardly announce to people youâve known just over a month, âLegend has it that thereâs some deep lore going on here.â
Y/n exhaled, her breathing finding itâs pace again and Luke felt like heâd been freed of all his bounds. ThatâŚwas not what they were expecting at all. They looked at each other uncertainly, shrugging before turning back to the others.
âYeah, come on, do tell. If weâre gonna be friends, we gotta know the backstory of this whole thing we got roped into. We got time.â Mark leaned closer into the group, they all leaned closer as if they were about to hear the greatest secret of all time.Â
They both sighed, Luke speaking up first, âWell, it all started when we were five-â
The retelling began, everyone invested in their cat and mouse game that demonstrated how naive and fragile the world can be. The rumble of the dining hall silenced out in their ears, and while one chapter closed for good, university would open another, but this time, theyâd live it together where theyâd be on the same page instead of skipping sections or tearing parts out. Luke got his girl and y/n got her romance, and neither would be stuck waiting on each other anymore.
small worlds | @bunbunbl0gs
nhl wags | @bunbunbl0gs
[Masterlist]
[Requests CLOSED]
2024 Š STAR2FISHMEG All rights reserved - do not plagiarise/copy, translate, or repost any of my works. Please let me know if you notice that any of these have been done to my work.
Banners & dividers belong to @/cafekitsune
#1 fan fr
Pierre Gasly x Fem!Reader
Warnings: soft boyfriend!pierre, reader is insistent on this one thing, the couch is getting some action, thigh riding, penetrative sex (P in V), choking.
Word Count: 1,638
Author's Note: don't get upset, pierre lowkey gives me the ick so this is my public serve act of the month - writing him :)
merry smutmas series
--
You have your boyfriend drive all around the city until you find the one thing you were looking for. When you finally find it, you decide you want something else.
The noise pulls him away from the simulator, Pierre could hear your grumbling as he made his way to the kitchen. "Mon amour, que se passe-t-il ? Qu'est-ce que tu cherches?" (My love, what's going on? What are you looking for?) He asked as he leant on the wall, arms folded over his chest.
Your back was to the man, "I'm fine." You tell him, sitting on the counter as you dug through the cupboards.
"Is something missing?" He walks over, standing by the counter as he watches you shuffle things around.
"I had this cocoa powder," you shut the door, shifting on the cold marble to face him. "It was in a red tin, I can't remember the name of it but I swear I left it in there."
Pierre's brows furrow, head tilted to the side. "You're sure you left it in there? And you didn't use it all?"
"No, I know I left it in there." You tell him, hopping off of the counter. Your boyfriend shrugs, "I could take you to the store to look some more, if you wanted."
"Okay," you nodded, "let's go."
He looks over at you, watching as you grab your coat. "Oh, now?" He points to the door and you nod, "yeah, come on."
Pierre smiles, shaking his head as he grabs his own coat and his car keys. Only you'd have him running around to look for cocoa powder. Knowing you, it had to be the specific brand you were looking for otherwise you wouldn't buy it.
You were particular like that - part of why Pierre loved you so much.
There you were, walking up and down every single aisle in the store, Pierre following behind you with the shopping cart. You had yet to find what you were looking for but your boyfriend managed to fill the cart up halfway with some bits and pieces he needed.
You were in the aisle with coffee, tea and other things like that. "What was it called again?" He asked, looking up and down the shelves.
"I have no idea," you admit, scanning the shelves for a red tin. Pierre hums, picking up something red. "Was it this?" He shows you, leaning on the handle of the shopping cart.
Looking over, you reach for the tin to get a better look at it. You read the label, looking at the picture. "No," you shook your head, "but I remember it had a picture of a reindeer on it, with some trees or something like that."
Pierre nods, "okay." He takes the tin from you, putting it back on the shelf. You look around some more and Pierre follows you into another aisle before you eventually call it quits and cash out.
Despite not finding the cocoa powder, you still ended up with a trunk full of stuff.
You two checked a few other stores, making your way from one end of the city to the other and you still did not find the thing you were looking for. You had gone as far as googling 'hot cocoa powder with reindeer and trees on packaging', scouring amazon, asking the workers in the store and no one had any idea what you meant or what you were looking for.
After coming out of the last store, you get back into the car - exhausted and you have given up. "Do you want to check anywhere else?" He asked you, looking over to you and you shook your head.
"I give up, Pierre." You sigh, making him chuckle. "But can you stop at the corner shop? I want a Red Bull.. oh and a Kit Kat."
Pierre smiles, "sure, love."
The man drives you towards the corner store, parking right outside before running into the store to pick up what you wanted. He returns a few minutes later, putting the bag into the back with the rest of the stuff before you head home.
Pierre brings the stuff into the house and you unpack it; that had been your deal since you moved in.
You find yourself putting away the stuff from the store, putting whatever had to go into the fridge, into the fridge before putting the rest of the stuff where it needed to go. There's one bag left, the one from the corner store.
Opening it, you take out the Kit Kat and then the Red Bull, but there's something else in the bag. A red tin with a picture of a reindeer in front of some trees.
It was the hot cocoa powder you were looking for.
You set the tin on the counter, running into the living room towards your boyfriend who sat on the couch. Pierre's caught off guard when you jump on him, sending him back on the couch. The man laughs, his arms around you as you sit on top of him.
"You found it!" You smile at him. "Why didn't you tell me?"
"Figured I'd surprise you." He smiles, rubbing your hip. "I take it, it's the right one?"
"Yeah," you nod, leaning down to kiss him. Your hand rests on his jaw, Pierre's other hand finds your lower back, pulling you flat against him. His head tilts to the side when he feels your lips moving down to his neck.
"Wait," he says, pulling you back a bit. "Don't you want the hot-"
"I'm loving on you and you're stopping me to ask about hot chocolate?" You laughed, looking at your boyfriend like he was crazy.
He nods, "yeah you're right, that's wrong of me. Sorry." The man laughs, pulling you back in for a kiss.
His hands find your hips and you shift onto his thigh. He lifts his leg, the sudden change causes you to slide forward, rubbing against the fabric under you.Â
You rocked back and forth on his thigh as he kissed you, the two of you only separating for a moment to take your shirt off. Your hands made quick work on undoing the zipper on his hoodie, giving up halfway and pulling on it until he managed to take it off.
The sound that left your mouth was like heaven on earth to him.
Pierre smiles, looking up at you sitting on his thigh. âWhat was that?â He teased and you shrug, âI donât know what youâre talking about.â Your cheeks are red as you look away.Â
His eyes fixed on you, his hands guide you back and forth, slowly moving you faster with each push and pull. âSo pretty,â he coos, pushing your hair back off your shoulders.
You nod, pushing down on his thigh a little harder. Your hands on his shoulder, nails digging into the back of them. That was gonna leave a mark.
Pierre flips you two over so you're laying on your back, under him. You look up at him, confused. âWha- whyâd you stop?âÂ
Your boyfriend pulls your leggings off, tossing it behind him somewhere and you giggle. "Oh," you look at him, watching him as he pushes his own pants down.
Your legs are up on his shoulders when the man leans down to kiss you, pushing into you. Your hips jut towards him, body betraying you. His arm wrapped around your legs, holding them in place when he pushes in a little more, letting you take all of him.Â
Pierre can already feel you clench around him, ârelax,â he tells you, a hand rubbing your thigh. Â
You nod, chest rising and falling with each passing second, your boyfriend's hips dug into the back of your thighs. He watches as your face twists in pleasure, your own hand wrapped around his bicep and your nails dig into him.
"God-" you cut yourself off with a moan, the tip of his cock brushing against the one spot you really wanted it too. "That, do that again." You looked up at him and Pierre was certain he wasn't going to last much longer.
Hair framing your face, the light reflecting off of your skin, the way your back arched and your chest pressed to his.
Pierre thought he had died and gone to heaven; you were an angel on earth.
He leans down to kiss you again, muffling your moans in the process. His lips against yours when he speaks; "just like that baby, c'mon."
âGonna cum-â you barely get out between strangled moans. Pierre moves one of his hands, letting it wrap around your throat.Â
You were so close, on the edge of cumming. His hand slips between the two of you, thumb pressing your clit, rubbing on it and his thrusts were the same as before
Your hand wraps around his wrist, he squeezes at your neck a little harder, your legs dropping from his shoulders to back around his waist. Between him fucking you and his fingers on your clit; you were seeing stars right now, vision blurry and your head tossed back, his name fell from your lips like a prayer.Â
Pierre laid flat against you now, his face buried in your neck. Your hand rubbing along his bare, skin sticky and warm. "Babe," you whispered, the man moving around a bit.
"Hm?"
"Can you go warm up some milk for me?" You asked and Pierre laughs, his chest vibrating against yours. "Yeah, baby. Sure." He gets up, putting his boxers on before walking to the kitchen.
You watch from the couch, smiling to yourself as he fills a pot with some milk and sets it on the stove. Wrapping the throw blanket around yourself, you walk to the kitchen and hug your boyfriend from the side. He leans, his arm wrapped around you when he kisses your head.
"You're the best," you tell him, smiling at him. "I know," he says and you laugh, smacking him on the side.
--
taglist: Â @nosugarallspice @evieepepi08 @mimithepooh @koufaxx @dannyramirezwife-simpaccount @topguncultleader @molliemoo3 @aisharmi @mamako23 @ac3may @lewislcver @miahgonzalez16 @books-and-netflix-pls @wibi96 @bwddermilch @pedrisgatorade @clarasenchant @sainzluvrr // @forza55 @norrisleclercf1 @allalngthewtchtower @therealcap @burningcupcakefire @stargirl36 @brettlorenzi3 @guiseppetsunoda @magnummagnussen @flippingmyshit @savrose129 @lovelytsunoda @irda12-blog @dhhdhsiavdhaj @slytheringirlthatkillpeople @f1lovers22 @toomuchdelusion @eviethetheatrefreak @faye2029 @lillians-world-is-f1 @chalando1604 @lenaxwbr @im-obsessed @potashiuhm @lcxlerc16 @enjoythebutterflies3 @lillyfootballsworld @micksmidnights @mashtonbunny @chrlsleclerc @logischeroktopus
One of the best yet
Wearing landos clothes
A/N: I feel like his clothes will be so soft and comfortable also this is a headcannon
Wearing Lando's clothes is your favorite thing
your boyfriend never cares when you steal his clothes
loving the way you look in them and how cute you are
also the way you smell like him after wearing the clothes for a period
coming home after a long flight and it's finally summer break
it's hot out so you have the windows thrown open
enjoying the smell of sea salt and the sounds of Monte Carlo
Wearing a pair of his boxer briefs and Mclaren shirt
no bra, it was way to hot for you to wear one
also you're home so anyone with an issue could suck it
laying on the couch you watch some crime documentary
rolling your eyes at some of the stupidity but none the less
helps you forget the time
Lando rubs his eyes, unlocking the door and walks in
stopping he smiles seeing you sprawled out
you got so sucked into the show you didn't notice Lando come in
movement at the door catches your attention
turning you see your sweatshirt wearing boyfriend at the door
sitting up you eye him making a comment about the heat
the exhaustion that was creeping it's way up just disappears
tossing his bags aside he pulls the sweatshirt off
you can't help but eye his little happy trail but go back to the beard
comments about you wearing his clothes and he can't help
but find it hot you're wearing his briefs
you groan telling him it's too hot but he laughs
he doesn't care for sex right now
laying down he lays his head on your chest
he loves laying on your tits for some reason
Lando adores you in his clothes it meant you've been here
the entire time and that you missed him
you weren't one to voice your emotions more of a black cat
yet you did soft things like this that made him happy
whenever the two of you travel he packs extra clothes for you
he makes a face at your show pointing out the stupidity
you yell exactly adding in your own points
Lando smiles, snuggling closer to you
this is what he wanted to come home to all the time
you in his apartment, wearing his clothes, and watching your
crime shows and him cuddled into you
this was the life
Yeah, I cried đĽ˛đŤś
Summary: âDo guys from therapy usually hit on you?â â Or, the one where Oscar has to go to group counselling after a turbulent race incident and meets you, the quiet girl at the back of the hall.
Pairing: Oscar Piastri x fem! reader
Word count: 19k
Warnings: 18+ Minors DNI â Angst: they meet in therapy, it's all angst, lying, guilt, implied former drug addiction and fraudulent behaviour. Smut: penetrative sex, oral (f! receiving), Oscar is a boob guy, very soft and vanilla, maybe a size kink? Fluff: they cuddle? and the ending is happy-ish? Other: takes place during a fictional 2025 season, an atheistic conversation about religion, smoking cigarettes.
A/N: This might be the gloomiest thing Iâve ever written, but it also has 5k words of pure smut, so yeah, there's that. Iâm weirdly proud of it. Please tell me what you think âĄ
Abu Dhabi, 2024. Oscar could still smell the smoke sometimes, in nightmares or if he zoned out for too long. The scent clung to his mindâburning tires, scorched metal, and marshals running around in panic. In his dreams, he could hear the crackle of flames, feel the searing heat against his skin, as they carefully dragged him out and placed him in the medical car. He was sure that it was already in some compilation on youtube about the worst crashes of the season. Hell, maybe even in history.Â
Verstappen had already claimed his title, but getting the last win of the season would be a dream for anyone. It was a matter of pride, ending the season on a high note. For Oscar, it ended with a crash instead, just as he was about to overtake for the win on the last stint of the race.Â
And of course, it had to be with Charles.Â
Everyone loved Charles. And everyone hated Oscar for being the reason their favourite driver lost out on a win. Hate was a strong word and he was used to people having varying opinions about him, but there was something about this that he couldnât shake off.Â
The worst part was the screamingâscreaming that he had later been told never even happened. He'd made it up in his head. When he was being pulled from the wreckage, he could have sworn heâd heard Charles crying out in pain. Heâd replayed it over and over, only to learn that Charles had gotten out firstâbefore the fire even started to spread. Sore from the impact, but otherwise unharmed.
Oscar didnât realise in the moment that the crash would affect him. It took months for it to catch up to him. It all cumulated into a breakdown during the pre-season testing for 2025, where he had locked himself in a room to drown out Charlesâ screaming, getting the attention of his trainer and people on his team that something was wrong.Â
He was supposed to be the calm one. This was the opposite of calm.Â
He had Murphyâs Law on loop in his head. Everything that can go wrong will. It had never been like that for him beforeâanalysing every possible mistake. It wasnât even the mistakes he actually made, but the ones that never happened. It made him paralysed to get in the car every single time, but once he actually started driving, all those thoughts went away.Â
It was the imaginative screaming that had led him to where he was todayâthe parking lot outside of St. Anneâs Church before a group therapy and support meeting. It wasnât a grand building by any means. The stones of the church were worn, weathered with years of storms battering its exterior. It always seemed to rain in this fucking town.Â
His therapist, trainer, and team had decided that this was best for him. Mandated meetings once a week until he could feel calm outside of the car and not just while driving it. This wasnât about talking to some high-paid therapist; he already had one of those. No, this was about learning to cope with normal people, people who had been through real trauma, people who didnât live their lives in the fast lane.
âYou need support,â theyâd said, as if these weekly gatherings at a worn-out church with other equally messed-up strangers would patch up whatever was broken inside him.Â
He had talked on the phone with the man leading the group, explaining that it would most likely be best for Oscar to show up to his first meeting, take a seat, and just get a feel for how it worked.Â
The meeting was held in a hall on the side of the church, an annex built sometime in the seventies while the church itself was centuries old. He was hit with the smell of old wood and damp air as soon as he entered. The group wasnât smallâmaybe twenty people scattered around the room, sitting on mismatched chairs. It didnât feel like one of those alcoholics anonymous meetings heâd seen in movies, which had been his first preconception.Â
He found a spot on one of the middle rows, on the edge to not draw attention to him. The personalities he could see around the room were all different. There were the nervous ones, bouncing in their seatsâmaybe it was anxiety, maybe it was abstinence. The tired ones seemed to be the majority. He fitted into that group himselfâtired of life. You also had the desperate ones, sitting in the front, almost leaning forward to better grasp whatever words of wisdom were being said.Â
Guilt seemed to be a theme for everyone.Â
One after one the facilitator let people go up and speak at a makeshift lectern. Some just gave little updates, giving Oscar the impression that theyâd gone to meetings for a long time. Others were speaking up for the first time. One that stood out was a mother, maybe in her fifties, whose daughter had just passed away in a car accident. She cried as she spoke, searching for some way of dealing with the guilt she felt, having let her daughter borrow her car even though she knew it was old and unsafe.Â
This was around the time when Oscar thought to himself that he should just take the money he had, find a way out of his contract, emigrate to Iceland, and change his name to Fabio. Never ever have to think about a race car again.
People were going on about their lives, their regrets, their struggles with addictions, or just their attempts to survive whatever the world had thrown at them. But none of it really resonated with him. Oscar didnât feel like he belonged here. His problems felt different. And he wasnât sure if that was because they actually were different or because he just couldnât find the right words to describe them.
At some point, his gaze shifted toward the back of the room, and that was when he noticed you.Â
A girl his own age. You were sitting there, apart from everyone else, half-hidden in the shadows near the exit. You looked like you didnât want to be seenâshoulders hunched, sat far down in your seat. You stared at your hands, fidgeting with skin around your nails. Oscar could spot your chipped black nail polish from across the room. He had a hard time reading your face, mostly obscured by your hair and the collar of your jacket.Â
He couldnât help but wonder why you were here. He wondered it about everyone else too, but you stuck out since you were similar in ageâyoung enough that people didnât automatically assume that youâd gone through hardship. You looked⌠different. Troubled, maybe. Definitely out of place.Â
Oscar forced himself to look away, trying to focus on the group facilitator, who was droning on about acceptance and healing. He felt restless, a creeping anxiety gnawing at the edges of his thoughts. Why had he even come? This place didnât feel like it could fix anything.Â
By the time the session ended, he hadnât spoken a word.
As the last of the attendees dispersed, Oscar lingered under the arched entrance, watching the downpour. He pulled up the hood of his sweatshirt, offering him some warmth from the cold rain. A faint glow from distant streetlights illuminated the soaked pavement, creating an eerie atmosphere that somehow felt fitting.Â
Thatâs when he saw you again, as the heavy church doors closed behind him with a slight thud. You were the last one out of the building. Out of the corner of his eye, Oscar saw you light a cigarette. His eyes met yours briefly, but you were quick to look away.Â
You exhaled smoke, sitting down on the stone steps leading up to the entrance, letting single raindrops fall onto your leather jacket, while still being mostly covered by the awning.Â
For a second, Oscar thought about walking away. He didnât know youâhe didnât know anyone hereâbut something kept him rooted to the spot. Maybe it was because he knew he would need to talk to someone here, not easily getting away from the mandated meetings. Maybe it was because you looked so damned lost.Â
Either way, he found himself speaking before he could stop himself.
âUh,â he started awkwardly. âI like your stockings.âÂ
You blinked, glancing down at your legs. Through the rips in your jeans, a pair of sheer black stockings peeked out, the floral lace pattern barely visible. You didnât say anything right away, just stared at him with a look that was half-surprised, half-annoyed. Then, you blew out smoke from between your lips.Â
âThanks,â you muttered.Â
Oscar shifted uncomfortably, unsure if he should leave or try to salvage the moment. Why had he said that? He wasnât good at small talk, never had been. He had no idea why he thought this was the time to start improving that skill.
You let out a low chuckle, almost like you were laughing at him. Wordlessly, you asked him if he wanted a cigarette, lifting the carton up in his direction.Â
He shook his head. âI donât smoke.âÂ
You took another drag, shrugging your shoulders, basically saying suit yourself to him. With your gaze turned back to the ground, the silence stretched on awkwardly, only broken by the sound of raindrops splattering against the asphalt.
âArenât white lighters supposed to be bad luck?â he asked suddenly, noticing the bright plastic you were flicking between your fingers. Heâd heard that somewhere, an old superstition and coincidenceâthat a group of famous people who had died at a young age all had white lighters in their possession. It was a stupid thing to say, but it felt better than nothing.
You looked down at the lighter in your hand and then back at Oscar, a humourless smile tugging at the corners of your mouth. âMaybe thatâs the fucking point.âÂ
Oscar didnât know what to say to that. He wondered if you actually meant itâthat bad luck didnât matter to you, like you almost welcomed it. He wasnât sure he believed in luck in that sense anyway. To him, life felt more like a balance of choices and chances, not fortuneâs favour. But sometimes, maybe when the stars aligned and all that palaver, he believed in luck and he believed in doing the right thing to experience that luck.Â
Call it superstition, if you must.Â
The both of you continued to stand there in silence. Well, technically, you were still sitting. Two strangers, clinging to the building that was supposedly about to fix them, all while not really knowing if they even wanted to be fixed.Â
After a few long moments, you stood up, stubbing out the cigarette on the wet stone. You stuffed your hands into your pockets, casting him one last glance before heading out into the rain. The water immediately soaked your hair, but you didnât seem to care. You hopped into a car that had pulled up at the end of the parking lot, an older woman in the driver seat.Â
You left him without a word and a strange feeling inside of himâlike this situation wasnât already odd enough.Â
_______________________________
You put out your cigarette as you reached the entrance of the church, again. Just another Tuesday in your life. Youâd lost count on how long you had been going to these meetings. Two hours every Tuesday and one hour every Sunday.Â
It was a bit of a lie, that you didnât know how long it had been. You just didnât want to know how long it had been and therefore told yourself to not think about it until youâd all but forgotten about it.Â
However, Oscar was a new addition to the meetings, for a month or so. Seeing him, seemingly waiting for you before going inside, was odd? But not uncommon by now.Â
You didnât say anything as you walked up beside him on the church steps, only giving him a slight nod as a way of saying hello. You looked out over the parking lot, glistening wet from the rain that seemed to haunt this small town. You were practically lucky that it wasnât raining at the moment.Â
Something about the parking lot was different today, though. It stood out like a diamond in a drawer of costume jewellery.Â
There, parked conspicuously at the curb, was a sleek McLaren. The kind of car that didn't belong in this part of town, especially not parked outside a church where people came to unload their emotional baggage.
As if reading your thoughts, Oscar caught you staring with raised brows. âWhat nobhead takes their McLaren to counselling?â you muttered under your breath, clearly not expecting him to hear. But he was close enough, and the corner of his mouth twitched up into a smile.
He chuckled, a low, surprised sound. âThat would be me.âÂ
You blinked, not expecting it to be him, let alone be so direct about it. âIâm sorry.âÂ
âNo, youâre not,â Oscar chortled, shaking his head, like he found your frankness refreshing, if not amusing, as though he wasnât often spoken to like that.Â
âYeah, itâs a dickish thing to do,â you admitted, giving him a half shrug. You couldnât help but smile a little, though. He had a way of taking the sting out of your sharp words, as if he didnât mind your snark.Â
Youâd quite frankly been rude to him at a few of the former meetings, yet he still didnât mind sitting in silence next to you for two hours every Tuesday. You were both here, after allâboth stuck, both dealing with whatever mess had brought you to therapy.Â
The last few sessions had been the sameâcatching each otherâs eye as you sat in the back of the room, listening to peopleâs stories. Neither of you said much during the meetings, but you always seemed to find each other afterward, just outside the church, where the air felt a little less suffocating. You smoked, and Oscar just stood there, pretending not to be bothered by the cold weather.Â
It had become something of a routine. You werenât friends, exactly, but there was a strange sort of understanding between you. Tonight was no different as the meeting started.Â
You slipped into your usual spot near the back, watching as Oscar settled in a seat nearby. The room was filled with voices, people exchanging quick pleasantries before it started, just like every week, with people telling their stories.Â
Youâd gone to meetings for such a long time that you knew the backstories of most people. It had been so long that some regulars had even stopped going, claiming they were fixed. Or at least fixed enough. You guessed that was the real goalâto not completely overcome trauma but to learn how to live with it. Then there were the people who were mandated to be there, by their workplace or by a court order. They were more hesitant than the people who went by their own free will, but their stories were always better when they finally got to talking, more interesting to listen to.Â
âHave you ever gone up there?â Oscar whispered at one point, curious.Â
âNope,â you replied without hesitation, not looking at him. âThey can force me to be here, but they canât force me to talk.âÂ
He looked at you for a moment, head tilted slightly, like he wanted to ask more but thought better of it. You could practically feel the question hanging in the airâwho the fuck were they?âbut he didnât press. Instead, he glanced around the room again.Â
You liked that he didnât push. That meant you didnât have to lie to him.Â
There was an unspoken rule in these circles. Speak, or donât, but never fake it. It couldnât be about pretending, and for now, silence was as close as either of you seemed willing to come to honesty.Â
When the session ended, you found yourselves once again standing on the church steps, the night air brisk and cutting. You fumbled with a cigarette, attempting to light it against the persistent wind. Oscar lingered nearby, hands in his pockets, as he watched your futile attempts, half amused.Â
âNot getting picked up today?â he asked.Â
You shook your head, giving up on the cigarette and putting the lighter and carton back into the pocket of your jacket.Â
Oscar hesitated for a second, unsure whether to say anything. He was starting to feel that familiar awkwardness creep back in, the same feeling heâd had the first time he spoke to you. But before he could stop himself, he blurted out, âI could give you a lift.âÂ
You shot him a sidelong glance. âIâm not sleeping with you, Oscar,â you said flatly.Â
Oscarâs eyes widened, and he spluttered, âW-what? No! Thatâs notââ He stumbled over his words, horrified.
You raised a brow, watching as he struggled to find his words. He was blushing, his ears practically glowing red under the streetlight. âYou offered to drive me home without ulterior motives?â you asked, sceptical.Â
âYes, I was just trying to be nice,â he said firmly, but flustered. âDo guys from therapy usually hit on you?âÂ
You let out a dry laugh, almost feeling guilty for your wrong assumption about him. âYouâd be surprised at how many men find head-cases attractive.âÂ
He only became more embarrassed, his mind flashing back to the first thing heâd ever said to youâa compliment on your stockings, of all things.
There was a vulnerability to him you hadnât expectedâsomething behind the stubborn façade and expensive car. He didnât look like the kind of guy who was used to rejection. Or awkwardness. Or therapy, for that matter. But his loser personality made all of those things very possible.Â
âWell⌠I just wanted to make sure you got home safely,â he said, shifting awkwardly.
You studied him for a moment, weighing his words. Then, with a sigh, you jerked your head toward the McLaren. âFine. Start the fucking car.âÂ
Inside the car, the quiet was different, somehow more suffocating than outside on the church steps. Maybe it was the notion of having to actually talk to each other now that hadnât felt as forced outside of the car.Â
 âSo, where to?â Oscar asked, his hands gripping the wheel a little tighter than necessary.
You glanced out the window, your fingers tapping idly on the door handle, almost scared to touch the absurdly shiny car. âDo you know the council houses behind the post office?âÂ
âBy that one pub? With theââÂ
âThe Swan, yes thatâs the one,â you interrupted. âMy aunt lives right there.â
Oscar nodded, pulling away from the curb and heading in the direction youâd indicated. You kept your gaze fixated out the window as the car began to move. The streets passed by in a blur, the rain-slicked asphalt reflecting the dim glow of the townâs yellow lights.
âAunt?â he asked after a beat of silence. âParents not around?âÂ
You didnât answer immediately. For a moment, Oscar thought heâd overstepped, thought you were going to turn to a rudeness that he couldnât joke his way out of. Â
Then, quietly, you muttered, âI think I am the one whoâs not around.âÂ
He heard you clearly, but he didnât press further. He didnât try to fill the space with meaningless chatter, and for that, you were both grateful. For a moment, it was peaceful, almost as if you were just two people out for a casual drive instead of a pair of strangers bound by a not-so-positive common denominator.Â
As the car approached the run-down council houses, you unbuckled your seatbelt but didnât immediately move to get out. Instead, you turned to him, studying his profile in the low light, something unreadable in your expression.Â
âThanks,â you said after a moment.Â
âFor the ride?â he asked.Â
âFor not being a complete dick,â you replied as you pushed open the door and stepped out into the cold. You didnât look back, but you knew that he was smiling behind you.Â
_______________________________
The following week, you were late. Not late enough for it to actually be a problem, but late enough that Oscar felt the awkward tension of deciding whether to wait for you outside like he usually did or go inside. He definitely could have waited, but he was particular about time, so he went in.Â
Oscar glanced around the room, sitting somewhere in the middle now that you hadnât decided seats for the two of you. He noticed the faces that had become a strange sort of fixture in his life over the past months.Â
The season had started and it was going fairly well. He had thoughts of disaster almost every weekend, but he didnât hear Charlesâ screaming as often. It was usually worst during qualifying, when the short amount of time made the anxiety build up quicker. But he was stable. Even his therapist had said that. He wasnât a danger in any way, but he still just wished to get an answer as to why this crash had affected him in the way that it did.Â
Your heavy footsteps interrupted his thoughts, your Doc Martens making a thumping sound against the old hardwood flooring. You looked like a drenched, unhappy cat, caught in one of the townâs relentless downpours. For a moment, Oscar smiled; he hadnât thought heâd ever see you sit anywhere but the back row, yet here you were, sliding into the empty seat next to him with a huff.
You took off your wet leather jacket and threw your bag on the floor, almost curling into your seat on the uncomfortable chair, a paper cup of hot water warming your hands. There was a station outside of the room with tea and coffee and you would grab a cup of tea for yourself before every meeting. Oscar had learnt that by nowâalso knowing that you brought your own tea bags since they only offered black tea and you drank rooibos. Oscar had lived in England for a long time, but the science behind drinking tea was still something that confused him.
You rubbed your face dry with the sleeves of your oversized sweater, not caring that your mascara smudged around your eyes. Oscar thought about offering his own hoodie, or at least a tissue, but you didnât seem the type to want help with something so small. Instead, he kept quiet, simply watching as you tried to shake off the rain.
A beat of silence passed between you both. Then, you spoke first.
âYou never come to the Sunday meetings.â
You tried to sound casual, but the question was deliberate; it was thought through. He glanced at you, surprised. It wasnât often that you were the one to initiate a conversation, and when you did, they were short and edged with sarcasm.
âDidnât even know they had meetings during the weekend,â Oscar replied with a shrug. âI work most Sundays.â
âSo do I, but I manage to show up here anyway.â
He noticed the way your eyes held his gaze, challenging but curious. You werenât shy to look him straight in the eye, unlike himself. The light from the nearby windows cast a muted glow over you, softening the lines of your face, your smudged makeup giving you a look of tiredness that felt familiar to him.
It was like you were waiting, expecting him to talk again, and he felt that familiar twist of unease, a reminder that vulnerability wasnât something he navigated easily. A hint of a smile crossed Oscarâs face as he looked away, not sure how much to say.
Todayâs meeting wasnât much different from all the others. There was the mother who dealt with guilt after losing her daughter in a car crash. There was Anthony, a local restaurant owner, who was there as part of his probation plan after an assault charge. There was Jenny, a girl in her thirties who was mandated by her therapist to be there as exposure for her agoraphobia. It was definitely ironic that the girl with a social anxiety disorder did more talking than you and Oscar combined.
During a brief five-minute break, Oscar looked over at you again, seemingly lost in your thoughts.
âYou think youâll ever get up there?â he asked, nodding toward the lectern.
Oscar knew he had asked similar questions before, but this one was more to ask if you thought this group counselling thing would ever lead to you opening upâif you saw an end to these countless meetings by actually letting them help you, letting them make you feel better.
âNo,â you answered flatly. âOpening up to strangers is weird.â
He smiled at that. âI think this is supposed to have the opposite effect,â he said, crossing his arms. âThat itâs easier with strangers because we wonât feel judged in the same way.â
You looked up at him, amusement flickering in your eyes. âKeep talking Oscar, and we wonât be strangers by the end of this.â
He laughed, shaking his head. There was a subtle humour to your banter, like you both enjoyed pushing boundaries without really crossing them. Oscar settled on the idea that he didnât want you two to be strangers after all.
As the meeting came to a close, people began to shuffle out, some lingering to chat with one another, others heading straight for the door. You, as usual, made your way outside without a word. Oscar followed, as he always did, keeping a respectful distance but close enough that it didnât feel like a coincidence.
He never knew why he lingered. He wasnât even sure if you wanted him to. But the silence you shared after group therapy felt easier than the forced vulnerability inside.
Outside, the air was crisp, the rain from earlier having tapered off, leaving the ground damp and slick, the sun breaking through the clouds. You leant against the stone wall of the church, lighting another cigarette with the same white lighter heâd seen you use before.
Oscar frowned slightly, feeling a strange sense of unease creep into his chest as he watched you. He wasnât entirely sure why he cared, but before he could stop himself, he spoke up. âCan you stop buying white lighters, please?â
You raised your brows, almost mocking him. âWhy? Are you superstitious?â
âNo,â Oscar replied, shaking his head. âIt just feels like a weird thing to jeopardise.â
âWhat do you know about the 27 club anyway?â you asked, taking another drag. You were mindful enough to turn your head in the opposite direction as you blew out the smoke.
The 27 Clubâa bunch of musicians, mostly rockstars, who had died at the age of 27 due to rough lifestyles. Rumour had it that they all used white lighters for their cigarettes and other smokeable substances. Oscar didnât know anything about their music or the club they were in. He just knew of the rumour.
âLiterally nothing except that they died carrying white lighters,â Oscar admitted, rubbing the back of his neck. âAnd that you deserve to live way past the age of 27.â
You blinked, taken aback, and for a moment, the armour you wore around yourself seemed to crack. You stared at him, cigarette halfway to your lips, processing what heâd just said.
âWho knew you could be so sweet?â you teased, trying to be your usual sarcastic self, but there was a warmth in your voice that hadnât been there before. That tiny hint of warmth made his chest feel strangely tight.
A few moments passed in comfortable silence before you broke it; your voice quieter now. âWhy do you keep coming here anyway? You donât talk much either. So why show up?â
Oscar hesitated, unsure how much to say. He wasnât a stranger to lying about his job to people, often times just because he couldnât be arsed to explain or have people ask if he was rich and famous. It wasnât like that with you, but he still decided to lieâor opt out of telling the entire truth. He wanted you to think he was normal.
âIâm mandated to be here by my workplace,â he began, choosing his words carefully. âI caused a car accident with a colleague of mine, and I kind of need to be able to drive to keep my job.â
You frowned in confusion. âBut you drove me home? Are you scared of driving?â
âItâs⌠different,â he admitted. âDriving long distances for work or just around in this little hellhole.â
You studied him for a long moment, as if weighing his words. Then, in a surprisingly gentle tone, you asked, âDo you like⌠get flashbacks of the crash and blame yourself all over again?â
Oscar nodded, exhaling softly. âYeah, I guess itâs like that. I keep replaying it, even though my colleague was fine. Itâs like this⌠loop in my head, where I keep imagining every possible way it could have gone worse. Murphyâs Law, you know? Like, I canât help but think of every possible mistake I could make.â
âMurphyâs Law is about engineering, though,â you pointed out. âYou canât just apply that to your everyday life. Itâll turn you into an impossible perfectionist, constantly waiting for everything to fall apart.â
Oscar smiled, appreciating the unexpected insight. It reminded him of how little you knew about him, since, yâknow, he hadnât told you the truthâthat engineering actually was involved in his everyday life. And yet, somehow, you still seemed to understand. The irony wasnât lost on him, and he found himself wondering what other surprises you might be hiding.
You stubbed out your cigarette, bending down and reaching into your bag for a piece of chewing gum. He watched as you unwrapped it, slipping it into your mouth, the familiar scent of artificial strawberry filling the air. It was a ritual heâd seen before, almost like you were trying to erase the smell of smoke as quickly as youâd created it. The action was so practiced, and he found himself charmed by the small, sort of endearing quirk.
âYouâre not gonna ask me why I keep on showing up here?â you asked, looking wondering up at Oscar, mumbling slightly as you chewed to get the gum soft.
He glanced at you with a faint smile. âYouâll tell me when you feel comfortable enough. I know that.â
A soft, almost approving nod was your only response.
âThereâs my ride,â you murmured as a car drove into the parking lotâthe same car heâd seen many times before, the same old woman driving. He could now assume it was your aunt. âI guess Iâll see you next week, then.â
Oscar stumbled on his words as he tried to say goodbye to you, caught off guard by how you almost skipped down the church stairs, looking happier than ever. It was a weird juxtaposition, because you obviously werenâtâhappier than ever, that is. You actually dared to look back at him, smiling as you walked over the parking lot. The mascara still sat heavy under your eyes as light shone down on you from the clouds breaking above, and in that moment, you looked like the saddest thing under the sun.
After the car had driven away, Oscar stood still with his thoughts outside the church for a second. He had to look into the weekend meetings. Even if he could never attend them himself, he needed to know why they were important enough for you to mention them to him.
With a last glance toward the parking lot, he went back inside, his eyes drifting toward the bulletin board in the hallway. Various flyers covered its surface. The community really tried its hardest, offering support groups for just about anythingânewly becoming parents, cancer survival, dealing with grief and death.
Oscar looked at the schedules, most of them being on weekdays. However, anonymous groups for recovering alcoholics and narcotics were on Saturdays, respectively, Sundays.
It didnât take long for Oscar to understand.
He also understood why you had asked him. You wanted to know if you had another thing in common other than the group meetings. You hadnât known he was there because of a car crash, so in your mind he might as well have been there for other issues, like drugs or alcohol.
Oscar didnât know your full story. He didnât know why you were here, why you kept showing up week after week, or what had led you to seek out meetings. But he did know one thing: you werenât as unreachable as you pretended to be, and he was willing to wait until you felt ready to show him the parts of yourself youâd kept hidden.
_______________________________
The soft clink of glasses and low murmur of voices filled the pub as you wiped down the counter for what felt like the hundredth time that day, your hands moving out of habit, eyes scanning the sparse crowd. Picking up an afternoon shift instead of the night shift wasnât something you normally did, just for that reason. It was the same amount of hours, but it felt a lot longer since the customers were fewer. Thankfully, the evening crowd was starting to build up.Â
A woman sat at the counter, maybe ten years older than you, her fingers tracing the rim of an empty glass, her gaze flitting between the door and her phone. She had a nervous look and was dressed too nicely for the pub. You knew the typeâthe first datersâplanning nights to the last detail, hoping for it to go well but preparing for disaster.
âWaiting for someone?â you asked, offering to take her glass.Â
âYeah, a first date. I needed some liquid courage in advance,â she replied with a tight smile.Â
âWell, you look gorgeous,â you assured, showing her a genuine smile. âIf they turn out to be a wanker, just come up and order an angel shot and Iâll help you out of here.â
Her smile widened, a bit more relaxed now, as she thanked you.Â
You made a point to watch over her as your shift went on. Her date arrived shortly after, looking just as nervous as she did. You let yourself relax; at least he wasnât a no-show, and he didnât look like the type to catfish someone. In fact, he looked almost as nervous as she did, and you found yourself rooting for them.
Working in a gritty pub had never been your dream, but it was what your CV got you at this point in life. You had tried living in London, making ends meet by working at a cocktail bar, but you had crash-landed back in your hometown, like big time crashing.
Thankfully, the owner of The Swan hadnât looked too closely into your past, or he at least didnât care. You knew how to pour a pint, you knew how to clean up, and you knew how to deal with rowdy drunk people. That made you a top employee.Â
You moved on autopilot around the familiar bar with its familiar patrons. Some old, who frequented the bar even on weekdays, and some young, who you mostly saw on weekends.Â
You had learnt to listen to some and to eavesdrop on others. Like, you knew all about Dennyâs divorce and custody battle because he sat by the bar and went on and on about it as he downed London Prides. But you had to eavesdrop to know that the group of girls who came in after work on Fridays had finally staged an intervention for their friend who put up with too much shit from her boyfriend.Â
Little things like that made bartending enjoyable.Â
Other thingsâlike loud groups of lads your own ageâalmost always made it less enjoyable. That was why you felt a tiredness fall over you like an anvil in a slapstick comedy when you, even with your back turned to the door, could hear them enter. You let out a resigned sigh, knowing that the evening was about to take a livelier turn, and maybe not for the better.Â
However, they werenât the usual group that gave you and your colleagues trouble. This were customers youâd never seen before. Strange for being such a small town with only The Swan and two other pubs. Sure, the boys were loud as they came to the bar to order from your colleague, but they were patient and not overly rude.Â
You froze in surprise.Â
You felt your grip slip from the glass you were holding, almost dropping it. While his friends filed up to the bar with an eagerness for drinks, Oscar lingered, his eyes darting around the room before landing on you. The shocked look on his face was almost priceless. He looked as startled as you felt, his eyes widening briefly as they locked onto yours.
He seemed out of place in the gritty atmosphere of the pubâtoo put-together, too polished. You knew he wasnât British from his strong accent, and you knew he wasnât the most outgoing type from his well⌠personality. He didnât belong in here, but for some reason his friends had waltzed right in to The Swan, never having done so before.Â
You were scared to think about why, but deep down you knew.Â
Before your colleague could ask him for his order, you stepped forward. You wiped your hands on a towel and raised an eyebrow. âYou lost?â you teased lightly, leaning against the bar.
Oscarâs friends were still gathering their drinks, a couple of them glancing your way with open curiosity. Your colleague doing the same, knowing full well that you would have to explain this to them afterwards.Â
Oscar smiled back, a bit shyly. âNo, just⌠here with some friends.â He gestured vaguely behind him, looking mildly uncomfortable.
âSo,â you said, folding your arms. âWhat can I get you?â
Oscar chuckled, rubbing the back of his neck. âNot drinking tonight. JustâŚmoral support, I guess.â
âYou know where to find me if you change your mind.âÂ
For a moment, you both stood there, the noise around you fading into the background.
His friends soon called after him to join them at their table and you had a job to do. As you moved around the bar, greeting regulars, wiping down counters, and handing out drinks, you couldnât quite shake the feeling that Oscar was still there, his presence lingering even when he was out of view.
Each time you glanced over at their table, you caught him glancing back. The first few times he seemed nervous to be caught, but when he realised how often you looked at him, he really had nothing to be ashamed of if he stared back at you.Â
After a while, the place grew livelier, and you lost sight of him in the ebb and flow of customers, the noise picking up as more people filled the seats. The usual rowdiness of a Saturday night began to take hold.Â
Eventually, you saw his friends begin to gather their things, settling their tabs, pulling on jackets, and nudging each other as they headed out. You felt yourself get stuck in your steps behind the bar as you watched Oscar stand up from his seat. He exchanged a few words with his friends as they left, but he stayed, earning what you assumed were amused laughs and some crude comments.Â
Oscar waited a moment, watching them go, before he turned his gaze toward the bar. You tried to make yourself seem busy, cleaning a counter that wasnât even dirty. You felt a flicker of nerves as he approached, unsure if you should be the first to talk. He sat down on an empty bar stool next to Denny. He didnât have to dare to look at you because you already had all of his attention.Â
âI donât think Iâve seen you this long without a cigarette before, yâknow,â he said, breaking the silence. Â
You rolled your eyes, smirking. âI only smoke when Iâm stressed, which is less often than youâd think.â
Oscarâs smile lingered, a warm glint in his eyes that hinted that he understood that the only time he saw you was at the group meetings and that they were the thing that caused you stress to the point where you felt the need to smoke. You wouldnât even consider yourself a nicotine addict. However, of all things, nicotine wouldnât be the worst thing to admit that you were addicted to.Â
Your conversation was briefly interrupted by your other patrons, like Denny, who flagged you down for another pint. You poured his drink wordlessly, and Oscar waited, his presence somehow calming amidst the usual chaos of the bar.
The couple youâd served earlierâthe first-datersâapproached to settle their tab.
âThat looked successful,â you remarked with a friendly smile, referring to their date. Â
âYeah, honestly green flags all around,â she replied, throwing her date a soft smile as he took out his wallet. âThanks for the angel shot advice, though.â
You smiled. âGlad you didnât need to use it.â
The woman chuckled, her eyes twinkling as she looked from you to Oscar, as if piecing something together. She tilted her head toward you. âDo⌠you need an angel shot yourself?âÂ
âFor this bloke?â you asked in surprise, pointing at Oscar. âNah, I can handle him myself.âÂ
The woman nodded, smiling in amusement as she gave Oscar another once-over before heading out with her date, holding hands. Oscar, who had been listening to the entire exchange with a bemused expression, raised an eyebrow.
âWhatâs an angel shot?â he asked.
âItâs a code we use for people on bad dates,â you explained with a shrug. âIf they order one, it means they need help, and I step in. Itâs a subtle way for someone to signal theyâre uncomfortable without making a scene.â
Oscarâs eyes widened slightly in understanding, and he nodded. âThatâs pretty smart.â
âYeah, it can be useful. When I worked at a cocktail bar in London we had to use it almost every night. This place is a lot calmer.â
You knew it, Oscar knew it tooâthat rich people drinking Negronis at a rooftop bar in London were more troublesome once they got drunk than what people like Denny did once they were in on their seventh pint of the evening in a small town pub.Â
There was a brief lull in the conversation, the uncomfortable kind where you just waited for someone to break the silence. Oscarâs fingers tapped lightly on the bar, and he seemed lost in thought for a moment before, as if summoning courage, he spoke again, his voice a bit hesitant.Â
âSo⌠when are you off?âÂ
âInâŚâ you stopped to check the clock on the wall behind you. âThree minutes.âÂ
Oscar shifted, clearly nervous. âDo you want to maybe hang out? Get dinner or something?âÂ
You blinked, taken off guard. He looked so uncomfortable. It was endearing in a way you hadnât expected. He was as unsure of himself as anyone else was.Â
Oscar, meanwhile, felt as though he was the worldâs worst at this. It was no wonder he never had casual things like Lando seemed to have every other weekend, one night stand after one night stand. Not that Oscar necessarily wanted that, but to even feel like he had the possibility to ask someone out wouldâve been nice.Â
âI mean, if youâre up for it,â he added quickly, tripping over his words. âLike, we donât have to or anything. I just thoughtââ
You cut him off with an uncharacteristic giggle, the sound breaking through the tension. âOnly if I can use your shower. I smell like cheap beer and fryer oil,â you said, lifting your t-shirt with the pubâs swan logo on it to your nose, grimacing at the smell.Â
âOh,â he breathed, his face lighting up in relief. âAbsolutely.âÂ
You tossed the towel onto the counter, giving him a playful smile as you stepped around the bar to join him. âBut Iâll let you know,â you said, lowering your voice, âyou shouldnât hang out with someone like me. Iâll defile you.â
âIâm not as innocent as I act,â he said teasingly, but he wasnât even sure if he believed his own words, let alone did he fool you.Â
_______________________________
Oscar sat like a sociopath on the sofa waiting for you to finish showering. He was not sure his posture had even been this good. Youâd made your way to his flat after your shift had ended. Heâd offered you his shower and clothes while he said heâd fix the rest. However, every film he could think of watching seemed pathetic. Every type of food he could think of ordering seemed disgusting. He hadnât exactly thought this through when he asked you to hang out. He hadnât expected it to be so⌠casual? Or maybe easy? Like you actually wanted to be here, in his flat, spending the evening with him.
He was probably overthinking thisâno, he was overthinking this. But how could he not? He tried so hard to not think of the fact that you were wet and naked just a wall away, but he was pretty sure his brain broke in the process. Every detail was suddenly monumental, as though he was a teenager again.
The faint sound of the shower stopped, and he quickly sat up straighter, mentally scolding himself to look less⌠tense. He wasnât sure he was pulling it off. He could hear the bathroom door open, and then you were padding down the hall, and he practically whipped his head around to see you.Â
You were wearing one of his favourite shirts, the maroon fabric hanging over your frame, the hem brushing the tops of your thighs. Your hair was still damp, small droplets darkening the shirt where they fell. The sweatpants youâd borrowed were too long, so youâd tucked them into your socksâbaby pink, fuzzy socks with little red hearts on them. The socks were definitely not Oscarâs. He couldnât believe that was what you were hiding under your Doc Martens.Â
Oscar blinked, trying to reconcile the idea that thisâthis ridiculously adorable version of youâwas the same person whoâd honestly scared him during your first conversation.Â
âCute socks,â he chuckled, unable to stop himself.Â
âShut up,â you muttered, hiding a smile, before flopping down on the sofa next to him, already more casual than Oscar could ever be. âWhat are we watching?âÂ
He opened his mouth, but no words came out. He was acutely aware of how close you were, your leg brushing against his as you made yourself comfortable. You didnât hesitate to grab a blanket that was thrown over the back of the sofa, cuddling into it as you wrapped it around yourself.Â
âWe could watch⌠uh, anything you want,â Oscar finally managed.Â
You rolled your eyes, sinking into the sofa cushions. âIf you let me pick, itâs going to be something dumb.â
âIâm okay with dumb.â
Your lips curled into a smile, but you didnât say anything as you leant forward to grab the remote. Oscar sat there, watching as you navigated through streaming options. You were on the hunt for something specific, he noticed. Right in on Disney+ and quickly you searched forâŚBrother Bear?Â
Oscarâs brow lifted in surprise, but he didnât question it. In a way, it felt perfectly fitting. He let out a breath he didnât realise heâd been holding and settled into the cushions, letting himself ease into the film, into the quiet comfort of the moment.
You both ordered pizza that arrived sometime in the middle of the film. You liked pineapple on pizza, but he guessed he could overlook it. Especially if it meant you were here, sitting beside him, taking a bite with a content look on your face.Â
Youâd grown soft around the edges, for him. This was domestic, bordering on romantic. The girl he had first metâcigarette and white lighter in handâwouldâve never admitted to liking Disney films and to wearing pink fuzzy socks.Â
When the pizza was finished and the movie neared its end, you laid down in the corner of his L-shaped sofa, blanket fully surrounding you. Oscar wanted to scoot over, closer to you, maybe put your feet in his lap, but he hesitated, scared to cross boundaries. He chewed the inside of his cheek, lost in thought, hoping that his nerves would miraculously disappear.Â
And then you made a soundâa soft, involuntary awe that escaped your lips during the scene where Koda, the little bear cub, was reunited with his deceased mother through some sort of glowing spirits in the sky. Oscar had to admit that even though heâd seen this film as a kid, the plot was now completely lost on him because of you.Â
It was cute. Like, painfully cute, and Oscar felt that weird mix of cute aggression, where something is so adorable you just want to squeeze it. Instead, he let himself simply watch you, taking in the way your eyes glistened and your mouth parted slightly, as if youâd forgotten everything around you, wrapped up in this world of animated magic. He mentally cursed himself when you caught him looking.Â
âWhy are you staring at me?â you muttered.Â
âYou look like youâre about to cry,â Oscar teased and smiled boyishly.
âShut up, I do not,â you shot back, rubbing your eyes with your fingers. You were sharp enough to draw blood, and he was somehow always left unscathed.
He couldnât help but smile wider, watching as you tried to hide your embarrassment. In a brave moment, he moved closer, daring to take a hold of your wrist so that you couldnât hide from him. Your eyes were shining and a couple of your eyelashes had clumped together from the moisture.Â
âItâs okay to cry to movies,â he said, nudging you gently. âEspecially oneâs about animated animals.âÂ
âI am not crying. Not even close,â you insisted, laughing, sinking further into the sofa, pulling the blanket up to your chin.Â
You moved to the side and somehow, Oscar felt himself fitting naturally into the space behind you. He felt something shift inside him, a strange warmth settling in his chest. This was soft, quiet, almost painfully domestic. Yet it was real. You were here, cuddled up on his sofa, wrapped in his blanket, wearing his clothes, and laughing at something heâd said.Â
Neither of you said another word as you moved to lay together like youâd done it a million times before. He found his arm moving to wrap around you, pulling you in closer until your back was touching his chest. You lifted the blanket to cover him partly too. The movie rolled through its final scenes, and Oscar found himself paying even less attention now that you were literally touching him.Â
âYouâre gonna stay there?â you whispered as the end credits rolled.Â
âYeah, weâre watching the sequel.â
But neither of you moved to get the remote.Â
After a still moment, with a deep breath you moved to lay on your back. You glanced up at him, your gaze holding his for a long moment. Oscar didnât dare look away, even if his confidence told him to do it. At least it was easier to look you in the eye than to take in the rest of you.Â
His heart picked up when you adjusted yourself, the blanket slipping from your shoulders and the maroon fabric of his shirt shifted slightly, revealing the outline of your body beneath. Your breasts moved gently, and he couldnât help but notice the lack of anything underneath the soft cotton. His throat felt tight, and suddenly, every molecule of air around him seemed saturated with the scent of you.
Then, he realised that the scent of you was actually the scent of his laundry detergent and the soap he kept in his shower mixed with something that was uniquely you. And oh, how Oscar hated being a man. Was he really pathetic enough to pop a boner because you smelled good?Â
His body reacted before his brain could process it, betraying him in ways that were anything but subtleâwarm and spreading, settling quickly. He shifted uncomfortably, moving his legs in a feeble attempt to hide the evidence of just how much you affected him.Â
âOscarâŚâ Your voice was soft, questioning.
He shook his head, looking anywhere but at you as he managed to respond. âI know, Iâm sorry,â he said, mortified. His face burned with embarrassment. He couldnât believe this was happeningâcouldnât believe he was that guy right now.
âYou donât have to apologise,â you whispered, and you still werenât scared to look him in the eye. Oscar for once wished you were.Â
âYes, I do. It kind of ruins the mood,â he muttered, rubbing the back of his neck.Â
Your expression softened and then you shifted to give him a bit of space. In the process, you nearly tipped off the edge of the sofa, and instinctively, Oscar reached out, his hand steadying you by your arm. The warmth of your skin under his touch sent a spark up through his palm, grounding him, but he couldnât help feeling a pang of guilt if heâd made you uncomfortable.
âUgh⌠itâs justâŚyou just smell good, and youâre wearing my shirt, and your skin is the softest thing ever, and I canât think straightââ he stopped himself abruptly.Â
A laugh escaped your lips, soft but warm, and Oscar froze, unsure if heâd actually said all that aloud or if his brain had finally imploded.
âWhat are you doing?â you asked, tilting your head as you watched Oscar suddenly move away from you, sitting up in an awkward half-way position with the limited space he had behind you. It probably looked like he was about to bolt out of the flat out of sheer embarrassment.Â
âWhat am I doing?â He frowned. âI justâI donât want you⌠I mean, you shouldnât have to, yâknow, feel it.â
At that, your smile deepened, and you moved your legs, spreading them just enough to make space for him to settle between them, throwing the blanket off the sofa.Â
âOscar, can you⌠just calm down for a second?â you said gently, meeting his gaze with a reassuring look. âIâm not appalled by it, yâknow? But youâre acting like I should be.â
His heartbeat thundered in his chest as he looked at you, processing your words. You didnât seem bothered in the slightest. It was in this moment that Oscar also realised the position you were in, with him between your legs, fighting with his arm propped up to not fall flatly over your body. You werenât scared to brush his sides by shutting your thighs just the slightest.Â
âYouâre okay with this?â he felt the need to ask.Â
âI am.âÂ
Oscar let his eyes linger for the first time, deciding for once to let the awkwardness melt away. And just like always, your eyes were on him, almost shamelessly scanning his broad shoulders and the way the fabric of his grey sweatpants stretched.
The shirt youâd borrowed had ridden up slightly, revealing your soft stomach and the hem of your underwearâa black cotton thong, the thin material peeking out. What was the frontal version of a whale-tail called? When the elastics sank into the soft parts of your hips and showed on either side above the waistband of your sweatpants.Â
Yeah, Oscarâs brain was definitely broken.Â
His mind spun, grasping for words, but all he managed was a shaky breath as he leaned in, like he couldnât believe that he was seeing it, that he was this close. The air brushed against your skin. His mouth was as dry as a desert. You inhaled so sharply that he could hear it and see your stomach rising. He was eye level with your belly button and he decided upon⌠kissing it. Or right next to it, on the softest part of your stomach, the world narrowing down to just that patch of skin.Â
He looked up for reassurance, and you just smiled. A perfectly content smile where light sparkled in your eyes. Oscarâs hands found your waist as he kissed you again, his lips trailing gently across your stomach. Your skin was impossibly soft, practically melting into his hands.Â
Oscarâs next step was unplannedâlike this entire thingâand maybe a bit silly, but when he was down there, kissing your stomach, he couldnât help but want to venture higher up. So, like any other unreasonable person with hormones clouding their judgement, he stuck his head under your shirt, starting by kissing your ribs.Â
You let out something between a gasp and a giggle as your breathing picked up the higher up Oscarâs mouth wandered. Where your ribs connected in the middle of your chest, right where the skin was the thinnest, was where he started to gently suck and he earned his first moan. You could feel him start to smile as it escaped you.Â
When you looked down at him, all you could see was how his head stretched the fabric, and it was simply just humorous.Â
âI could just take my shirt off, yâknow?â you teased, though you were out of breath. Â
âNo,â he mumbled, lips brushing against your skin, an audible mwah leaving his mouth as he moved higher, planting a soft kiss in the valley between your breasts. âItâs warm under here.âÂ
You let out a small laugh, your fingers resting on top of his head, the shirt still acting as a barrier as you felt his hair through it. âWouldnât have taken you for such a boob guy.âÂ
Oscar closed his eyes as he felt your quiet laugher vibrate through your chest against his lips. Your breasts were practically lodged against his cheeks and he was definitely flushed red all over so it was actually convenient for him to be hidden under your shirt.Â
âShut up,â was all he could manage to mutter.Â
He couldnât hide anymore when he felt you pull the shirt up by the hem, first over his head and then swiftly over your own, it landing somewhere on the floor. Oscar was left laying there, chin resting against your sternum, feeling totally exposed as your eyes met his again. He didnât dare to take in the sight of you shirtless, even though he was literally on top of your breasts.Â
And while he probably looked like a flustered mess, you looked totally unfazed.Â
âYou motorboated me,â you exclaimed, laughter in your voice, âand you havenât even kissed me on the mouth! Feels a bit backwards, donât you think?âÂ
Oscar chuckled, not having the time to think that he should be ashamed because of what you just insinuated. His hand moved to gently cup your cheek as he lifted himself to look at you.
âWhat Iâm hearing is that you want to kiss me.â Â
He hated to sound cocky. He promised he really did. But with your jaw slacked and disbelief plastered on your face, he felt like he had said the right thing. You werenât pushing him away, werenât closing off the moment like he half-expected.
Instead, you were pulling him in.
If he thought your chest had been soft, your lips were like fucking velvet. It was like he was scared to touch you with how delicate you felt; with how softly you met his own lips. The initial connection was quick before he pulled away an inch or two to gather your reaction. With pure lust in your eyes, you were back to kissing him again before he had the chance to overthink what had just happened.Â
The kiss deepened slowly, a tender exploration of new territory, a silent acknowledgement that thisâwhatever this wasâwasnât just a one-off moment.
Oscarâs heart hammered in his chest as he shifted, his body now hovering over yours. His lips brushed against yours in a series of soft kisses. Then, before he knew it, your tongue was fighting his own. Your arms wrapped around his shoulders, pulling him in closer, and he let himself be totally absorbed by you.Â
And oh my god, you were shirtless beneath him. He struggled with where to place his hands, feeling strange holding your face for too long but scared to grip your bare waist with his wandering hands. But when he felt you push up towards himâyour nipples rubbing his shirt, the soft flesh of your breast squished against his chestâOscar felt like he could indulge fully.Â
With his forehead pressed against yours, Oscar pulled away and asked, âDo you want this to go further?âÂ
You nodded first, swallowing your breath, before verbally saying a low and desperate yes too.Â
He wasnât sure if he answered anything coherent or just let out a loud huff when he leant back down to kiss you. As his hands travelled up your body, you could feel goosebumps form under his fingertips. He stoked the underside of your breasts, taking in the way you reacted, before fully cupping them in his palms.Â
You tipped your head back between the sofa cushions as his lips moved down your jaw and neck, littering you with open-mouthed kisses. He towered over you, his lower body fitting perfectly with how your legs spread for him.Â
Oscar smiled as he grazed his teeth against your nipple, hearing you gasp at how he purposely teased you. And while he hadnât thought about it like that before, you were definitely right with calling him a boob guy. Because fuck, could he spend his time adoring and fondling your soft tits, malleable in his hands and stimulating on his tongue. The way they perked up and became more sensitive with his touch was about to make him delirious.Â
And the sounds you were makingâthe gentle breathy groansâwere better than any sound heâd ever heard before, practically deafening to his ears by how much he was concentrating on it. God, was he glad to have to turned on the sequel because having sex to Phil Collins wasnât really on any bucket list. Especially not with how overwhelming he found your noises. Â
He released your nipple with a smacking sound, gazing at the attacked skin of your chest and neck. It would leave bruises, which made him feel even more like a horny teenager.Â
âCan you take your shirt off?â Your voice felt airy and small.Â
While your hands had already crept under to rake down his back as you were kissing, Oscar hadnât exactly thought about the imbalance. Heâd do just about anything to make you comfortable, meaning that his t-shirt soon joined yours on the floor.Â
He was an athlete, yet he hadnât personally ever thought he looked like one. Heâd never been one of those guys to confidently parade around without a shirt on in summer or post pictures of himself flexing in the gym. He just couldnât do it.
But your eyes on him, the way you nestled your lower lip between your teeth, and how your hands immediately reached out to touch him⌠yeah, that was maybe the closest thing heâd felt to confidence in a long time.
âDo you feel okay?â
He wasnât sure how his own voice would sound when he spoke againâdry and muffled, distracted by a million different things.Â
âMhm,â you sighed out. âYou wanna take off the rest of my clothes or should I do it myself?âÂ
Oscar gulped at your forwardness, but he guessed he already knew that you wanted to take this further. So did he, like insanely. With fumbling fingers, he untied the drawstring on your sweatpants and worked them down your hips, until you laid there in front of him in just your thong and fuzzy socks.Â
He had sat up to take off his shirt, but he now nestled down between your legs again. There was no way in hell that he would last long inside of you, so he would need to please you beforehand. A gentleman, after all.Â
Oscar felt like he was about to die at the thought of going down on you, his blushing cheeks almost hurting from how warm they were. His hair was messy, his lips were kissed raw, and his pupils had dilated until all you could see in his eyes was darkness.Â
âYâknow you donât have toââ you tried to tell him.Â
âWhat if I really want to?â he questioned, almost rhetorically. You didnât fight him on it.Â
He kissed down your stomach until he came to the hem of your panties, absentmindedly rubbing soft circles on your hips and then down your thighs. There, his thoughts were simply reduced to the need to have you, in whatever way you allowed him.Â
You were impatient, while Oscar took his time to enjoy you. He tortuously dragged his lips across your thighs; the faint pattern of your skin looked like thin, pale lines spreading like lightning strikes. Once he dared to touch you over the fabric and feel the wetness that had soaked through, he could hear your breath hitch.Â
Slowly, he hooked his fingers in the sides of your thong and dragged them down your legs, leaving them discarded on the floor with the other clothes. Fully naked, except the socks, but those were staying on, Oscar decided.Â
âHave I told you that youâre gorgeous yet?âÂ
You were looking down at him with an expression akin to frustrationâmouth slightly open and heavy breaths spilling out, almost scoffing at his clichĂŠ words. He couldnât help but feel a sense of pride as his own breaths hit your skin, blowing against your exposed heat. He pecked the stretched skin on your inner thigh to soothe you, stopping your writhing.
At a loss for what to do with your hands, they found their way down to his hair, weaving through his soft curls, tugging gently to get his attention.Â
âOscâŚâ you said with a simple breath.Â
That was really all Oscar neededâto hear you want him. That stupid little nickname was also something special. He hummed against you, feeling your reassurance as he kissed gently over your clit. And before you were able to complain for more, he latched his lips around it, suckling in a way that made your vision momentarily blank. His movements were tentative at first, unexperienced and lacking confidence.Â
âOh, youâre so good,â you exhaled, praising him.Â
And there was something about the way you say it that just drove Oscar mad. It wasnât that it felt goodâit was that he was good. He got off on your reaction. It was as simple as that. It made him determined, building something with precise dramatics.Â
You felt his left hand grasp at the skin of your thigh, slowly inching upwards before he carefully sank a finger into you. Your hips twitched and you moan out loud as he played with you. He worked you open before adding another finger, his mouth never leaving your clit in the process. Even when your thighs fought to stay open, caging him between them, he didnât falter. And every once in a while, when his eyes looked up to meet yours, you only felt yourself falling apart quicker.Â
His voice was low, the tone soft, when he mumbled something against your swollen cunt; something about how you tasted good. His free hand gently pressed down on your stomach to make you focus on the sensationâto feel his fingers ripping you apart from the inside out.Â
âGod, fuckfuckfuckââ You were barely making sense of your own words as you bucked up against his mouth, completely buried over you, nose bumping your clit with his repeated motions.Â
Automatically, your hands grasped your breasts, fingers toying with your already sensitive nipples. Moving from your stomach, Oscarâs right hand was placed on your tits too, clasping his fingers over your own as he squeezed.Â
When you inevitably fell apart, he didnât stopânot until you were a complete mess beneath him. Arching, white-hot, and expanding with intensity before his very eyes as he continued to softly lick. The way he was making out with your soaked core and babying your clit with the tip of his tongue would make one believe that this was a man who had never been shy or embarrassed over a single thing in his life.Â
And he wasnât going to stop until you begged him.
With a pleasured and defeated âOscar, pleaseâŚâ you were letting him know that he had done his jobâthat he had won you over in more ways than was necessary, that you were spent by him.Â
âI know,â he cooed, kissing your stomach. âI know.âÂ
He moved to lay beside you, gently sliding his fingers out of you before tap, tap, tapping at your puffy clit, keeping his eyes steady at how you reacted. A slight hiss left your mouth before a hoarse laugher slipped out too. Your legs were still trembling from how intense your orgasm had been.Â
âYouâre a mess,â you chuckled, raising a hand to brush his hair back then wiping his mouth with the back of your hand to clean him. âAnd a menace.âÂ
âWell, so are you,â he smiled, kissing you on the mouth, neither of you caring about said mess.Â
You took a moment to breathe, and Oscar took a moment to think. While he couldnât think straight, he could still come to the conclusion that this was such a good feelingâan overwhelmingly good feeling that he hadnât felt in a long time, maybe never before.Â
By now, his cock was painfully hard beneath his sweatpants, definitely having leaked pre-cum through his boxers. If it had been bad before, it was so many times worse now with you heaving next to him, naked and looking at him through your eyelashes. He was practically seeing stars, and you hadnât even touched him where he ached the most.
It was almost unjustifiable the way he was feelingâsomeone should just tape a sign to his forehead that said practically a raging virgin and call it a day. He wasnât one, just to clarify, but you made him feel like one. Â
Your hand trailed gently down his chest, your nails painted black like always. Oscar wasnât sure he was breathing anymore. He wished he could react normally to your touch, but instead it was like his skin raised like a mountain range wherever your hand wandered, his eyes following your movements with a pitiful desperation.Â
And when your hand moved below the waistband of his sweatpants, resting gently over his boxers, and therefore his erection too, he wasnât sure what exactly would happen to his bodyâsomething new, a biological error, or a supernatural phenomenon.Â
You were so close to him, pulling his trousers down in such a fashion that your legs almost clashed together while it happened. Then he was naked, and you turned quiet.Â
Abashedly, he tried to think about what he looked like from your perspective. He wondered if he was too thick or too thin, if he shouldâve groomed better, or if his upper body was disproportionate to his legs, or if he smelled bad, if he was just plain weird, orâ
âHoly shit,â you whispered.Â
âW-what?â Oscar stuttered.Â
While Oscar was busy analysing himself, you were gawking. Maybe people on TikTok would call it a âsleeper-buildâ, but there was nothing subtle about it. His pale skin looked pretty in a flushed pink tone, easily scratching under your sharp nails. Broad shoulders, toned stomach, thick thighs. Your eyes couldnât help but look lower and lower. The pure size of him sank in a second later.Â
âYouâre⌠big,â you said like a matter of fact. âItâs been a while, so youâll have to go slow.âÂ
âW-what?â Oscar stuttered, again.Â
His eyes widened to the point where it strained them. Of all the things you couldâve said, that was probably the one he expected the least. He tried to read your face, waiting for more of an explanation.Â
With your brows furrowed, all you asked were, âYouâre surprised that I havenât had sex in a while?âÂ
âNo!â he hurried to say, not thinking about other implications his reaction couldâve had. Heâd curse himself for eternity if you thought he meant to slut-shame you. âIâm surprised about the other⌠thing. No oneâs ever said that before,â he gesticulated with his hand, unsure what to call the thing that had just happened.Â
You glanced up at his face to see that he was now sporting a smirk, letting you know that your words had gone completely to his ego. Motherfucker, was he pretty.Â
âIâm not sure I believe that,â you mumbled, kissing him again. Laying side to side next to each other on the sofa, both of your hands had grown eager to touch. It was waists and chests, up bare backs to tangle fingers in hair. Â
âI promise you that itâs the first time I hear that,â he mumbled back.Â
Your hand sneaked down between your bodies, and any cockiness that Oscar gained from his newfound âbig dick energyâ was washed away in seconds. A whimper. A fucking whimper was ripped from his throat as soon as your fingers were wrapped around him. He couldnât stop himself. Your movements were slow and languid, spreading the beads of pre-cum around his tip with your thumb. Oscar closed his eyes as he tried to not fall apart instantly.Â
âHowâs your pull-out game?â you asked between placing kisses on his neck and jaw. He had beautiful freckles and birthmarks all over his skin.Â
And, fuck, how Oscar couldnât think when dirty words left your mouth.Â
âIâ, Uhh⌠Not good?âÂ
He let out a moan mid-sentence. He felt both pathetic and tortured as your delicate fingers kept stroking him up and down.Â
âIâm on birth control anyway.âÂ
âI could go and get a condom,â he fought himself to say.Â
âDo you have one?â you questioned, and Oscarâs lack of an answer told you what you already knew. âI thought so.â Â
And while Oscar knew that he came across looser-like, he didnât also need it to be so transparent to you. Even though he sort of liked the dynamic built between you. He had always liked that you were quick-witted and a little mean.Â
Oscar exhaled, concealing another moan with a breathy chuckle. âYou need to stop making fun of me when Iâm naked. Itâs going to affect my self-esteem.âÂ
âCanât help it, youâre an easy target.â You quickly pecked his lips, a little laugher slipping out. âYouâre also a very pretty target.âÂ
He wasnât used to being called pretty. His mum called him handsome. His instagram comments called him a polite cat. Pretty was entirely new territory. But he liked it, and impossibly, he blushed even harder.Â
âAre we really doing this?âÂ
He just had to be sure, still in a bit of disbelief.Â
âPlease,â you said. âFuck me.âÂ
Oscar propped himself on his elbow, placing it beside your head, caging you beneath him. He took himself in his hand, giving his cock a few slow stokes. He looked tortured, the tip pink and engorged as it curved up towards his stomach, a thatch of hair connecting to his faint happy trail.Â
The head of his cock sat heavy against your entrance as he aligned himself, and you felt yourself desperately clenching around nothing. His free hand rubbed circles on your hip comfortingly. He was hesitant, and maybe that was your fault for asking him to take it slow, but the last thing he wanted was to cause you pain. With an eager nod, you gave him the green light.Â
âGod, youâre tight,â Oscar murmured, his voice breathless as he pushed forward.Â
âNo,â you gasped, gripping his bicep for something to hold onto. âYou are massive.âÂ
A low, strained laugh escaped him. âYou really wanna argue right now?âÂ
No, you didnât. Not when you felt him slide inside you completely.Â
âIâm okay,â you whispered, breathing heavily, unable to help the way you tightened around him. âF-fuck, you can move,â you told him, voice muffled against his neck.Â
Oscar inhaled sharply, softening to the touch by your reassurance, as he pulled his hips from yours before slowly moving back, tentatively creating a steady rhythm, stretching your around him.Â
It was intoxicating, and warm. While he knew that he liked you, he had never imagined it to feel like free falling. You still smelled like a mixture of him and yourself, and your soft skin was touching him in ways and places he couldnât describe. It was gratifying that you were just as desperate as he was. Â
He lifted your leg up by gripping under your knee, thrusting at a deeper angle. The sounds of your bodies crashing together filled the room as your moments only got quicker and needier.Â
Looking down at you, he saw your eyes struggling to stay open and your jaw dropping loose with the whimpers and moans you were letting out. Your tits bounced in pace every time he came to the hilt inside you.Â
âHoly f-fuck, you feel good,â he stuttered right in your ear. âYou feel like you were fucking made for me.âÂ
He was being lewd and you giggled. God, you giggledâlike Oscar didnât have enough of a hard time keeping it together. You were teasing him, but it was gentle and honeyed, like a beautiful song to his ears.Â
He forcefully dug his fingers into the soft fat of your thigh, spilling out between his fingers, doing just about anything to ground himself, but it was impossible. Admittedly, Oscar had never felt this good before in his life.Â
His living room was ablaze with your movementsâan incoherent mess between two bodies, all skin and bone, at each otherâs disposal to use.Â
âFuckâŚâ Oscar moaned, grinding his cock into you. âIâm already so fucking close.âÂ
âMe too,â you whined out, voice strangled. âLet it all go.âÂ
Oscar buried his face in your neck to try and hide his desperation, moaning and biting down into the soft skin. He was moving frantically, feeling it all approaching rapidly.Â
With a soft cry, Oscar was cumming, stuttering and needy, groaning everything from your name to all the curse words he could think of. He twitched inside of you, coating your walls with his cum. You moved one of your hands to his cheek and you held his face, staring intensely into his eyes, as he rode out his high.Â
Damn you and your damn eye contact.Â
He continued to slowly thrust, doing whatever he could to get you off while being totally spent. The hand on your hip drifted to your pubic bone before delving between your folds, his pointer and ring finger running steady halos over your clit. Thankfully, you werenât long after. He wasnât sure he could take the embarrassment of not making you cum when it had been so easy for him. You arched your back as it hit you, throwing your head back in blind pleasure.Â
And then it all slowed. The moans disappeared, and all that was left were heavy breaths in an eerily quiet living room. He felt warm air hit his neck as he laid down and you cuddled up against him. Mindlessly, you ran your fingertips along his skin, soothing the marks your nails had left. Heâd gone soft inside you, his release mixed with your own leaking out the sides.Â
âIâm gonna slide out, okay?âÂ
âMhm, slowly,â you whimpered as he did it, going from feeling full to achingly empty. A single tear ran down your cheek out of exhaustion and pleasure, and Oscar stopped to kiss it away, tasting the saline on his lips.Â
âTalk to me,â he whispered.Â
You let out a deep breath, your body feeling heavy but sated. âIâm good,â you murmured, your cheek pressed against his chest. âCan feel you dripping down my thighs though.âÂ
âWe should probably clean up.âÂ
He didnât move, and neither did you. You were perfectly content with the mess if it meant that you would stay cradled in his arms. He wrapped his arms tighter around you, legs intertwining. His pec was soft against you, and you could hear the steady rhythm of his heartbeat, a soothing backdrop to the quiet intimacy of the moment.
âI was going to let you wait annoyingly long before sleeping with you. I canât believe I caved in so easily,â you said suddenly, your voice soft but teasing. The words hung in the air for a moment, light and playful, but you could feel the way his chest rumbled as he chuckled.
Oscar raised an eyebrow, his curiosity piqued. âOh, really?â
You nodded, hiding your face in his chest. âYeah. Like, painfully long. Months, at least.â
âWhat changed?âÂ
You hesitated for a moment, your face still pressed against him. But then you tilted your head slightly, sneaking a glance up at him through heavy lashes. âCanât help the fact that Iâm insanely attracted to you,â you admitted shyly.Â
Oscar took in your smile before embarrassment made you hide it into his chest again. You were so⌠soft, like he couldnât actually believe it. Â
âGlad weâre on the same page,â he exhaled, sinking down further into the sofa cushions. He ran a hand through his hair, trying and failing to contain the pleased grin that spread across his face.
You kissed his chest gently, the steady rise and fall of his breathing lulling you into a sense of peace. For a while, neither of you spoke, the comfortable silence stretching between you. You were glad this hadnât turned awkward.Â
Then, his voice broke the quiet, low and soft. âAre you staying the night?â
You didnât look up at him, sort of scared to say a right-out yes to his question.Â
âIf you want me to.â
His arms tightened around you slightly, and you could feel the smile on his lips as he pressed a soft kiss to the crown of your head. âIâd love that.â
_______________________________
Oscar wasnât sure how long he spent starring at himself in the bathroom mirror afterward. He moved through his routine on autopilotâbrushing his teeth, rinsing his mouthâonly for his movements to slow as his reflection pulled him back in. His messy hair was still tousled. The love bites on his neck, faint but unmistakable, stood out against his pale skin. His fingertips grazed over the scratches on his shoulders, his cheeks warming as he recalled how they got there. He didnât think he would ever stop blushing tonight.Â
When he finally mustered the courage to step back into his bedroom, he found you there: bare feet on the hardwood floor, wearing only his maroon t-shirt. You stood in front of his dresser, looking intensely at something placed on it.Â
The trophies.
You had fucked his brains out so good that he had forgotten about the intricate web of omissions and half-truths he had woven around you. And now, his lies were staring back at him, literally and metaphorically.Â
This was about to be awful.Â
âSo, this is where you keep them?â Your voice was calm, deceptively so, as you turned to face him.
Oscar stood frozen in the doorway. He opened his mouth but no words left it, his body rigid as he grappled with the realisation: you already knew. Â
He hadnât wanted to keep these things out in the open. Unlike some drivers whose homes were practically shrines to their achievements, Oscar preferred subtlety. Most of his trophies were tucked away, gathering dust in storage. But theseâ mostly medals and pictures from his childhood, tokens of his early racing daysâremained on his dresser.Â
âIâve known for a while,â you admitted, as if offering him a way out of the confession he hadnât yet made. âSince I questioned you driving a McLaren to counselling.â
Oscar blinked, the pieces of the puzzle clicking into place with an awful, grinding clarity. It wasnât like he had tried to be undercover or specifically careful about concealing his identity.Â
âI thought you just worked for McLaren at first,â you continued, gesturing vaguely to the trophies. âBut then I googled your name and the brand⌠My brother used to be a big Hamilton fan, so I made the connection.â
He exhaled slowly, his shoulders slumping slightly as the tension drained out of him. âWhy didnât you say something?â He didnât mean for his voice to sound defeated, but it did.Â
âFigured there was a reason as to why you didnât tell me,â you shrugged, taking a seat on his bed. âI wonât force you to talk about things you donât want to. We met in an unconventional way and I fully understand that you donât want a stranger to know everything about you.âÂ
âDonât say that,â Oscar interrupted, his voice sharper than he intended. He stepped further into the room, his hands flexing at his sides. âWeâre not strangers, we know each other.âÂ
You tilted your head, your expression softening as you studied him. His sudden reaction surprised even himself, but he couldnât let the word âstrangersâ hang in the air between you. Oscar guessed he was more emotionally involved than he had let himself believe, but that he now couldnât deny it. He sat down beside you, the bed shifting under his weight, and your eyes searched his for somethingâan explanation, perhaps
âI know you,â he argued. âI know that you only smoke after counselling since it stresses you out and you think that because you smokeMarlboro Silvers, it wonât affect you as badly. know that immediately after, you chew strawberry gum to get rid of the taste, because you donât actually like it.âÂ
He started at you intensely as he kept talking, finally not scared of your eye contact. But he could see that you were crumbling.Â
âYou only drink rooibos tea because itâs naturally sweeter than black tea. You carry white lighters to appear fearless, but in reality itâs because youâre sad and you donât care if something bad happens to you.âÂ
âOh, and you cry to Disney movies,â he lastly added, âbecause you are in fact not fearless. Youâre scared shitless of the emotions you harbour inside and never tell anyone about. So, yeah, I know you. âÂ
You blinked, his words hanging in the air between. âThat doesnât sound like you know me,â you said after a long pause. âThat sounds like youâve observed me.â
âWe also quite literally just had sex,â he reminded you, a shy smile tugging at his lips. âAnd I think weâre alike in that senseâthat we donât casually do that with random people.âÂ
âFair point,â you conceded, unable to suppress your own smile.Â
And there it was againâthe strange, undeniable truth between you. There was truth in what you had shared with each other, always. Even if he had skipped the specifics, his feelings had never been false.Â
You exhaled loudly, your back hitting the mattress. It was like a balloon had popped, the tension in the taut latex having exploded into nothing. You were so tired. You always were.Â
Oscar knew not to push further. Not right now at least. He fell back on the mattress too, hiking further up to rest his head on his pillow. He lifted the covers to invite you underneath, cuddling you closer as your arms and legs were now slightly cold to the touch.Â
He also came back to the realisation that you knew him too. That you knew why he went to the group meetings. That you knew what he did all those weekends he spent working. That the car crash he blamed himself for wasnât exactly average.Â
âDid you see the crash?â he asked quietly after a moment, his voice murmuring between the sheets.Â
He felt you shake your head. âNo, I havenât seen a race since Hamilton last won the championship.âÂ
âRight, because of your brother,â Oscar remembered. âIs he no longer a fan?âÂ
âI donât know if he is. Havenât talked to him in over a year.âÂ
Oscar nodded slowly, taking in the weight of your words. You hesitated for a moment, your fingers tracing the edge of the covers. âDo you want me to see the crash?âÂ
âNo,â he answered quickly. âNot really.âÂ
âMy first impression of you racing probably shouldnât be a crash anyway.âÂ
The corners of his mouth lifted in a small, grateful smile, and he reached for your hand, lacing his fingers with yours. The weight of that topic seemed to drift away, and you found yourself sinking into the comfort of his embrace again, your head resting on his bare chest. He could feel your warmth tucked against his side, your breathing steady like a rhythm. You traced little patterns along his palm and fingers.Â
For a moment, it felt easy again. Soporific, even.
He couldâve easily fallen asleep, for once without thinking about nightmares. Oscar also didnât want this to end, for the night to be over and for him to have to say goodbye to you in the morning. Not that he imagined it to be a dramatic goodbye, youâd see each other soon enough again, but still, he didnât want to.Â
âYou should come with me to a race,â he said softly, breaking the peaceful silence, looking at you almost succumbing to slumber.Â
âI canâtââ you began and Oscar could immediately sense your hesitation.Â
âIâd pay for everything. I just want to have you there,â he added quickly, tilting his head to gaze down at you. It wasnât about the money. It wasnât about showing off. He just needed you near him, in whatever way he could.Â
Your body tensed up against him. âI canât leave the country Oscar.âÂ
The words didnât make sense at first. He frowned, confused. âIâm sure you can get time off from work,â he said, worrying that was the reason.Â
You turned your gaze away, your cheek no longer resting against him, and the absence of your touch sent a quiet ache through him. You couldnât meet his eyes, and the pause that followed felt agonisingly long. The words felt stuck in your throat, your chest tightening.Â
âI meanâ,â you paused, swallowing hard. âIâm not allowed to leave the country.âÂ
The room fell silent, save for your faint whisper.Â
âIâm on probation.âÂ
Oscarâs mind went blank. Probation. That was for criminal offences. Youâd done something deserving of a court sentence. Silence stretched between you, and Oscar pulled away slightly, just enough to look at you more closely. His brow furrowed, but he didnât speak.
âSo, Iâm sorry for calling us strangers,â you said finally, âbut you donât know the half of what Iâve done.âÂ
You sat up fully now, a cold weight settling in the bed. âWhat are you doing?â he asked, his voice steady, watching as you untangled yourself from the sheets, kicking the comforter off your legs.
âIâm leaving.âÂ
âNo. Youâre not.âÂ
His voice was firm, almost commanding, as he reached out and grasped your arm before you could move further. His grip wasnât harsh, but it was resolute. He wasnât going to let you walk awayânot like this.
âYouâre going to stay and tell me about this. I feel like you owe me that after what we just did.âÂ
You froze, whole body going rigid, but Oscar didnât let go.Â
âI need to know if Iâm falling for a serial killer or not,â he added with a half-smile, trying to lighten the mood, âbecause then Iâll seriously need to reconsider my life choices.â
Your heart ached at his attempt to make you laugh, but the knot in your chest didnât loosen. The humour didnât land, not fully, and the weight of what you were about to confess pressed down on you like a heavy stone.
 You bit your lip, your voice trembling as you said, âI c-canât tell you.âÂ
âWhy?âÂ
Your body trembled beneath his touch and he loosed his grip, thumb rubbing soft circles on your arm.Â
âBecause youâre a good person,â you whispered. âYouâre going to find me repulsive and never want to see me again.âÂ
Oscar could see it in your eyesâthe battle raging within you, the fear that once the words left your lips, he would be gone. But he wasnât going anywhere. You cared about seeing him again. That alone gave him something to hold on to.
âUnless youâve actually murdered someoneâI donât think thatâs possible.â His voice was soft, almost coaxing.
âI donât think you get probation for murder. I promise no one got hurt physically.âÂ
And even in this state, you still kept that sarcastic edge that heâd grown to adore.Â
âOkay,â Oscar said softly. âThen tell me.â
You sighed, your hands trembling as you ran your fingers through your hair. Your eyes squeezed shut, as though blocking out his gaze would somehow make it easier to speak.
âWhen I was 19 I got into a relationship with a guy who was a lot older than me,â you began, your voice uneven. âHe had a very⌠destructive lifestyle that I became a part of. I let him use me.âÂ
Oscarâs stomach twisted, but he stayed quiet, letting you continue. He could see how much it was costing you to admit this, and the last thing he wanted was to make it harder for you.
You slowly opened your eyes, not to look at him, but to look at the ceiling, blinking to fight tears from running down your cheeks.Â
âThe reason as to why I havenât spoken to my brother in such a long time⌠â Your voice broke, and you paused, taking a shaky breath. ââŚis because I committed fraud with his identity. I took out a loan using his name because I was desperate for money.âÂ
Oscar couldnât hide his shock, but he didnât pull away. You were laying it all out, raw and exposed, and he wasnât going to judge you. He couldnât. He stayed rooted in place, his hand still on your arm, grounding you.
âWhen he found out, he turned me in. I confessed to doing it and agreed on accepting help which is the only reason Iâm not currently in prison.âÂ
âAnd the boyfriend?â Oscar managed to ask.
You laughed bitterly, shaking your head. âHe took the money and fled the country. Havenât seen him since. But I paid my brother back. Every penny.â Â
Oscar nodded slowly. âWhat did you need the money for?âÂ
Your lips trembled as you looked down at your hands. âDonât make me say it. I feel like you already know.âÂ
And he did. Heâd known since he realised what those Sunday meetings were for.Â
âAre you clean now?âÂ
â14 months,â you quickly said. âEver since he turned me in. I have a badge on my keys if youââÂ
âIâm proud of you,â Oscar said, cutting you off gently.
Your breath hitched as he said it. It had surprised you. âSee?â he whispered. âYou didnât scare me away.â Oscar gathered his courage to hold you in his embrace again, laying you gently down on the mattress, letting your body relax on top of his.Â
âBesides,â he added with a wry grin, âIâm in an industry where if you havenât committed tax fraud, youâre probably the odd one out.â
You blinked in surprise, a startled laugh escaping your lips despite yourself. âWhat?âÂ
Oscar chuckled, the tension between you easing ever so slightly. âI know drivers whoâve had people go to prison on their behalf because of embezzlement,â he said, clearly exaggerating, but the humour in his voice was infectious. âYouâre practically a saint compared to some of them.âÂ
âFucking corrupt rich people,â you muttered.Â
âWell,â Oscar said, his hand moving down to hold yours, âthe point is⌠you canât scare me away.â
He heard you exhale loudly. He even felt it against his shirtless skin. Your arms tightened around him, clutching both yours and his chest. It was adding pressure to stop you from panicking.Â
And then you started crying. For real this time. It wasnât you fighting the tears from falling or shyly getting watery eyes from Brother Bear. You were sobbing. He hadnât thought he would ever see you cry.Â
Oscarâs heart broke a little as he watched you finally let go, your body shaking with the weight of everything youâd been holding in. He immediately pulled you closer into his arms, holding you close, his hand gently stroking your hair as you cried against his chest.
âIâve got you,â Oscar whispered softly. âIâm not going anywhere.â
You clung to him, your tears soaking into his skin, but he didnât mind. You were essentially a strangerâeven though he hated the wordâcrying in his arms, and heâd do anything in his power to never see you like this again. He had fallen for your softness, not the jagged edges you put up around yourself in protection. Heâd accept you unconditionally if it meant you didnât see him as something you needed to protect yourself from.Â
As your sobs quieted and your breathing got steady, you remained tucked against Oscarâs chest, resting over his heartbeat. You could feel his hand tracing soothing circles on your back. He almost thought you had fallen asleep.Â
âThank you,â you whispered after a long silence, your voice hoarse from crying.
Oscar pressed a kiss to the top of your head. âFor what?âÂ
âFor making me stay.âÂ
_______________________________
A couple of weeks later, on a Tuesday at St. Anneâs Church, you did something youâd never expected yourself to do. You found yourself standing at the lectern in front of the room of strangers that you had spent the past year of your life with. And Oscar, but he had never really been a stranger.Â
It felt stupid at first, when you walked up there and said your name, the people in the room saying it back to you like a choir. Some clichĂŠs from movies really were true.Â
You started off by giving a brief background as to why you went to meetings. It was supposed to be a guilt-free environment, one where you wouldnât be judged for anything. But opening up about betraying your own brother and getting probation because of it wasnât guilt-free no matter how you twisted it.Â
âSome of you might recognise me from NA meetings as well, but the drugs were never my main issue. I mean, I wasâ or am an addict, thatâs how they want you to say it in NA at least. There is really no denying that, but the real problem was how it made me treat the people around me.âÂ
You didnât like how your voice sounded in the echoing room, but it didnât stop you from trying. You knew that the people listening had their own issues so present that yours wouldnât bother them.
âI understand that my brother never wants to speak to me again,â you continued, your gaze falling to your hands, a cuticle bleeding from unconsciously picking at it. âI think I almost feel the same way. But then⌠Iâll go to Sainsburyâs and buy green apples, even though I hate them, but he loves them, and I used to buy them for him.âÂ
It was true. Youâd have vivid flashbacks about apples every time you saw them. Youâd get them from the store as if you were moving on autopilot and hate yourself for it when you got home and unpacked the groceries. Your aunt would always question why you bought them but never ate them, and you couldnât put that into words.Â
âIâll have a mental breakdown over some stupid apples and realise that⌠we are connected in a way that can never be erased. Thatâs my fault, my guilt to carryâthat I ruined it, that I get to argue with apples instead of arguing with him,â you said with an almost laugher.Â
You fixed your gaze on Oscar, whose eyes had never left yours for as long as you spoke. He held a tight smile, like understanding the humour in how trauma tended to materialise.Â
The facilitator asked you a question, like he normally did when he saw people trying to find the right words but struggling to get them into actual sentences. He asked you how time had changed the guilt you felt and if your probation still felt fair to you.Â
âItâs just so⌠fucked up that you can convince yourself that youâre evil and unfixable,â you answered, your voice growing steadier. âBut it turns out youâre just young. And youâll make mistakes because of it. Iâm paying for those mistakes, but I canât let them define me.âÂ
You decided that you were done there. You could say more, and you couldâve said less, but youâd done it now. That was the important part. And even though youâd never admit it, it really did feel better to have said it out loud.Â
As you stepped down and walked back to your seat, a small wave of applause followed you. You felt Oscarâs hand slip into yours as you sat down, his fingers squeezing gently, a wordless assurance.
It took a bit longer for Oscar to finally walk up to the front of the room, a month or so. But he did it in the end. You understood that he felt like his problems werenât like everybody elseâs, because no normal person could really understand his job. And feeling guilt over a car crash where no one was hurt wasnât easily explainable either.Â
Oscarâs movements were deliberate, almost stiff, as though he was trying to keep himself together with every step. He stood at the lectern, his hands gripping the edges tightly, and you could see the tension in his knuckles.
He talked about the crash in broad terms, but most of his focus was on Charles, and Oscarâs messed-up idea about how he had hurt Charles. When the facilitator asked him to base his guilt around something real, something factual, you saw the struggle in his expression.
âItâs just⌠guilt,â he said finally, his voice low. He paused, searching for the right words, but they didnât come. âIâm not sure I can explain it or give it a likeness. Not everything feels like something else.â
Not everything felt like something else. Issues were allowed to be unique and entangled. It wasnât about understanding them as much as it was about accepting them. You watched him closely, and you raised your arm to ask him a question, waiting for him to acknowledge you with a silent nod.Â
âIf Charles felt like he never needed to forgive you because he knew all along that this was an accident and no one was actually hurtâwhy canât you forgive yourself?âÂ
Oscarâs gaze dropped, his shoulders slumping slightly. He stood there for a long moment, the words sinking in.Â
He realised then and there that his main issue wasnât the crash or the possibility of it happening again. It was that he blamed himself for hurting someone elseâa hurt that granted hadnât even happened, Charles was fineâbut his mind hadnât cared about that. He had the lives of others at risk with the turn of a wheel, and the crash had made him mentally unprepared for that risk. He guessed he knew now what to bring up the next time he met up with his therapist. Â
After that meeting, Oscar talked for a moment with the facilitator, before he walked out to find you standing by the big doorway into the actual church, looking down the isle to the altar. He stood quietly behind you, placing his arm around your waist. The quiet of the church was profound, almost unsettling. The rows of pews stretched out before you, bathed in a soft glow of candlelight.Â
âI donât think I ever understood religion,â you said, whispering in the stillness. âOr God, for that matter. Itâs too quiet. Too much about self-reflection and not enough about the old men in the Bible for me to grasp it.â
Oscar didnât respond right away, his chin resting lightly on your shoulder as he followed your gaze to the altar.
âI see it as a last ditch effort for when you have no one else to talk to, but all you end up doing is talking to yourself,â he explained.Â
âSounds a lot like self-reflection to me,â you huffed a little.Â
Maybe that was the thing people needed mostâto get to know themselves. Bad people donât wonder if theyâre bad people. A truly evil person wouldnât feel guilty for something bad theyâve done. You were both paralysed by guilt, but standing there with Oscar, it felt just a little less heavy.
âOscarâŚâ you began again, turning to meet his gaze. âPlease donât tell my secrets to anyone else.âÂ
âWe literally had to sign an NDA to join the group, babe.âÂ
âYou know what I mean,â you said, rolling your eyes but unable to suppress a small laugh.
âI promise.âÂ
When you left the church that evening, it was abnormally sunny. Early summer, colouring the nature around you green. You walked across the parking lot hand in hand, that silent show of affection a normal occurrence between you now.Â
âOh,â he said suddenly, stopping by his car. âI got you something.â
From his pocket, he pulled out a lighter, its surface bright orange. He held it out to you, his expression almost shy. You blinked, caught off guard. You hadnât expected anything like this, the small, unspoken care behind the gesture. No more conscious bad luck.Â
âItâs a myth, yâknow?â you said, taking the lighter and looking at him softly. âMost of the 27 club died before Bic started making the white version.âÂ
Did Oscar feel a little stupid for not thinking to google the superstition before buying youâgranted, a very cheap giftâbut also something so laced with thoughtfulness? Maybe. Did he also deeply want you to stop being reliant on nicotine to feel calm? Definitely. But that was too late to say right now when you already had the lighter in your hand and he was blushing from how exposed he felt.Â
âWell, I think orange suits you better anyway.âÂ
_______________________________
Oscar had insisted, of courseâgently but persistentlyâuntil youâd finally agreed to come to a race. Silverstone wasnât out of the country, which meant it didnât violate any of your probation rules. A technical loophole, but a loophole nonetheless. Your 18 months were nearly over, but Oscar hadnât been able to wait.
Now, standing among the sea of spectators in the garage, the weight of his world began to settle. The sheer scale of it all was overwhelming. You couldnât deny it was exhilarating, but it also made you feel small, like an intruder. It was fucking Silverstone, after allâon a Sunday afternoon just minutes before the lights would go out.Â
You glanced down at your phone, trying to distract yourself from the growing tension in your stomach. Thatâs when a message appeared.
Eli: âAre you at Silverstone?? I swear I just saw you on TV.â
Your breath caught in your throat and your fingers tightened around your phone. Eli. What happened to hello? What happened to how are you? You stared at the message for a long moment. Before you could even process how to respond, another message appeared.
Eli: âAre you with Piastri?? What the hell?âÂ
A startled laugh escaped your lips, nerves bubbling beneath the surface. You glanced around, as if half-expecting Eli to appear out of thin air. Of course, he wasnât here. Heâd gone once to Silverstone with your father when he was young, but nowadays it was cheaper to try and go to Hungary or another European race.Â
So, right now you knew exactly where your brother wasâin the living room at your parentsâ place because even though heâd moved out a long time ago, he still went home every Sunday to watch F1 because he leached off of their streaming services.Â
You took a deep breath and typed back.
You: âYeah, Iâm here with Oscar.â
For a moment, you stared at the screen, your thumb hovering over the send button. Then, with a rush of courage, you pressed it. The three dots indicating Eli was typing appeared, disappeared, and reappeared again.
Eli: âWhy didnât you tell me? Youâre at an F1 race with a driver, and I have to find out on TV?âÂ
He definitely didnât mean to guilt-trip youâyou knew that. It was his way of breaking through the awkwardness. In a way, you supposed it was better to feel guilty about not telling him about Oscar than about the bigger things. The real things.
Before you could reply, you felt a tap on your shoulder. Turning around, you saw Oscar in his race suit, his face flushed from the adrenaline of pre-race preparations. He looked out of breath, but his smile was unmistakable, the sight of you clearly easing some of the tension in his own chest.
âHey,â he said, leaning down to kiss your cheek. âYou good?â
You nodded. âYeah. My brother just texted me.â
Oscarâs eyebrows shot up in surprise. You bit your lip, holding up your phone so he could see the messages. Oscar leant in, glancing at the screen, a small smile tugging at his lips.
âHe recognised you on TV?â
âApparently,â you said with a soft laugh. âHeâs freaking out.â
Oscarâs expression softened, his hand squeezing yours reassuringly. âThat has to be good, right? That heâs talking to you?âÂ
âI hope so,â you whispered.Â
Before either of you could say more, someone called Oscarâs name from across the paddock. He sighed, his thumb brushing lightly over your knuckles. âI have to go. National anthem and all that.â
You nodded, your fingers reluctantly slipping from his grasp as he stepped back. âGood luck,â you called after him.
He grinned over his shoulder, his confidence infectious. âThought you didnât believe in luck.âÂ
And while in the past you hadnât minded your own bad luck and superstitions, you definitely didnât want to spread that mindset to Oscar. You would start carrying wishbones, four-leaf clovers, and horseshoes if it meant that just a smidge of luck would be transferred to his life.Â
As he disappeared into the crowd, the nervous energy around you seemed to intensify. The minutes ticked by, stretching into what felt like hours. Your phone buzzed again, pulling your attention back.
Eli: âIâve missed you. We should talk whenever you can.â
Your breath caught, and for a moment, the chaos around you seemed to fade. You read the message twice, three times, the words sinking in slowly. For so long, youâd been afraid that youâd lost him for good, that the damage youâd done was irreparableâthat you were irreparable. But here he was, reaching out.
You: âIâve missed you too. Iâm back in town tomorrow.âÂ
You hit send just as the formation lap started. You were not sure for how long you held your breath after that.Â
Oscar was goodâso goodâand as you watched him race, you couldnât help but feel a surge of pride. He was in his element, completely focused, completely in control. You were glad to not have seen the crash that still haunted him at times, because this proved that it was just a fluke, a temporary stumble rather than a career-defining event.Â
As the checkered flag waved, you felt a sense of relief wash over you, knowing he had made it through safely. By the time the race was over, Oscar had finished in fourth placeâa strong result considering weak qualifying. Most positions gained by anyone in the race. As the crowd erupted in cheers, you found yourself smiling, the tension in your chest finally easing.
Afterward, you found yourself standing in Oscarâs drivers room, waiting for him to return. Your phone buzzed in your hand, and you glanced down to see another message from your brother.
Eli: âThat was an insane race. Piastri is a beast. Proud of you for being there.â
You smiled, feeling lighter than you had in months.
Moments later, Oscar appeared, his hair slightly damp from the helmet, his face flushed. He spotted you immediately, his eyes lighting up as he walked over, his smile wide despite exhaustion.Â
âHowâd I do?â he asked, his voice breathless.Â
âYou were amazing,â you grinned, stepping closer to him. âHow are you so calm? That was nerve-wracking as hell.âÂ
âIâve done this a couple of times before,â he teased. Oscar laughed, pulling you into a hug, his arms wrapping around you tightly. âIâm glad youâre here,â he whispered into your ear.Â
You buried your face in his shoulder, holding him close, and felt the last remnants of tension melt away. âMe too.â
Pulling back slightly, he looked down at you, his smile soft. âYou havenât been sarcastic with me all day, yâknow? Is there something wrong?âÂ
You smirked, tilting your head. âI can always startââÂ
Before you could finish, he leant down and kissed you, cutting off your words. Smack dab on the mouth, messy and rushed. When he pulled back, his eyes were bright and his grin was infectious. You guessed you didnât need to resort to sarcasm and snarky comments when you were happy. Simply happy.Â
I'd like to thank Strangers by Ethel Cain, Strangers by Sarah Klang, and Stranger by Blanks for all inspiring this fic. Apparently, I really like songs about being strangers.
â° Join my taglist or check out my masterlist <3
Tags: @alexxavicry
~Do I Wanna Know? by Arctic Monkeys~
Author's Note: welp this was a helluva lot longer and smuttier than I wanted but oopsie. Also first time publishing smut so like take it with a grain of salt. As always italics are flashbacks. lowkey may reupload without smut Summary: ig childhood enemies to lovers? Warnings: smut! smut! 18+ please do not read if uncomfortable, swearing Word Count: 10,241 Jack Hughes x fm!reader
It was her favorite and least favorite part of the summer. It was the three weeks during the summer where her parents allowed her to have the lake house to herself. She would invite her closest friends and their boyfriends to spend each day drunk and tanning or getting a sunburn. It was supposed to be the best summer of her life.
Until the Hughes boys next door started doing the same thing, during the same three weeks. She didnât mind at first, being a single girl, it was always nice to have some gorgeous men to admire. But her friendship, or lack of one, with Jack Hughes was always difficult to enjoy those three weeks.Â
Her hatred towards Jack started when they were younger. It was the second summer that her family owned the lake house. She was twelve, and Jack was thirteen. It was innocent at the time, at least Jack thought so. He would always throw her into the lake, tease her on every single aspect of her life.Â
They were sitting on the dock, swinging their legs over the edge. Y/N and her best friend, Chloe, were watching the sunset in their swimsuits. They have yet to meet the boys next door, all of them around their age. Twelve. The middle boy, seemingly the most outgoing compared to the others, began walking towards the entrance to the dock.Â
âIâm Jack, those are my brothers Quinn and Lukey,â Jack points out both of the boys shyly walking behind them.Â
âItâs just Luke,â the younger one peeped out. Chloe smiled towards the younger one as she slowly stood up from her seated position. Y/N tilted her head back suspiciously. Why now? Why were they suddenly interested in the two girls?Â
âChloe, this is Y/N and thatâs her parents' lake house,â Chloe explained as she pointed to the incredibly big lake house. Y/N reluctantly stood up from her seated position as she awkwardly walked beside Chloe.Â
âWant to go swimming with us?â Jack asked, standing point between his two brothers. Chloe smiled widely, nodding her head as she walked towards the boy.
âWe should probably go ask my parents if we can, itâs getting late,â Y/N said while awkwardly crossing her arms over her body. Jackâs eyes widen, a smirk forming on his lips. Y/N dropped her gaze towards her painted toes.Â
âYou need to ask your parents? What are you like four years old? Come on, letâs go,â Jack teased as he began walking towards her and Chloe. Y/N lifted her gaze, furrowing her eyebrows harshly as she scanned his features. He had a wide smile on his lips as if he was up to something.Â
âNo, I just-they like to know where we are,â she offered, swallowing hard. He rolled his eyes as he took a hold of her waist, âWhat the hell?!â she shouted as he lifted her up in the air and began running off the dock. Luke, Quinn, and Chloe quickly followed them. Jack and Y/N landed hard into the lake, it was cold.Â
Jack let go as they hit the water, he slowly resurfaced shaking his head. He laughed hard as Y/N resurfaced a few seconds later, a frown on her lips.Â
âI donât know you! Why did you do that?!â she shouted towards him, shoving him away from her.Â
âBecause it was funny,â he mumbled, a smirk on his lips as he shifted his gaze towards Quinn. He was not as amused as Jack was. Luke on the other hand was laughing up a storm as he thought it was funny as well.
âDoes it look like Iâm laughing?!â she groaned as she stared towards him.
âI thought it was funny,â he let out, still grinning. Chloe shyly started to laugh too as she stared towards Y/N angry expression. It was at that moment Chloe knew, a friend group was formed.
She pulled into her parking spot at the house with four of her friends squished into her small car. Chloe was in the passenger seat beside her. Her boyfriend, Jacob, was in the back beside Ollie and Melanie. She pulled her keys from her car and lifted her gaze towards the Hughes house to see a large group of guys sitting on the front steps sipping White Claws.
Her eyes landed on the boy she to this day despised. Every summer she would have to spend every day with him, every second of it she would hold a scowl to her features. She hated him, she hated that he was cocky and confident. She hated that his ego had been boosted by being drafted first overall. She hated that TikTok made him into the white boy of the year. She hated the smirk on his lips, she wanted to smack it right off.
Stepping out of the car, the boys across the house instantly hollered. One boy's voice stood out particularly as he said, âBout damn time you showed up Sunshine!â Jack called out.Â
She was sixteen now, four years deep into her hatred towards Jack Hughes. Itâs been four years of constant petty arguments, the teasing, the constant feeling of wanting to punch him. She was laying on the dock, a towel beneath her frame as she laid out, feeling the heat from the sun burn her skin.Â
Chloe was still asleep, as she could sleep forever if she had the chance. It was ten in the morning, the sun was already working hard. She wasnât looking to tan, but she loved the feeling of the sun on her skin. It was too early for her parents to get out on the boat, so this was the second best option.
She heard footsteps walking towards her, a sigh fell from her lips as she slowly sat up, looking towards who was walking towards her.
Jack was shirtless, approaching her. She rolled her eyes as she laid back down, shutting her eyes. Jack smiled as he sat beside her, crossing his legs as he stared towards the lake, admiring the sun cascading over the water.Â
âHey Sunshine,â Jack let out, knowing the nickname would piss her off. He loved making her mad. Ever since that day he tossed her into the lake for the first time, itâs been his goal to make her angry. A groan fell from her lips as she covered the sun from her eyes with her hand.
âGo away,â she mumbled as she moved her hand back to her side. He smiled as he rested his elbows onto his knees. He looked back towards the lake.Â
âNo ones awake yet, who else am I supposed to talk to?â he asked, shifting in his spot slightly.
âThatâs not my problem, go away,â she let out as she took a deep breath, her chest rising and falling. Jack glanced towards her chest, clearing his throat slightly as he dropped his gaze towards his lap.Â
âBut we have such great conversations, Sunshine,â he teased as he bit his bottom lip.
âStop calling me that,â she said as she sat up on her elbows, meeting his gaze as she squinted from the sun. He smirked as he looked into her eyes. His eyes casually lowered, scanning her frame. Looking at the small beads of sweat on her skin.
âDo you want to go with me to go get breakfast for everyone, Sunshine?â he asked. She huffed, forced out a laugh.
âWhat makes you think I want to spend any time alone with you?â she questioned. He tilted his head to the side while running his fingers through his hair.Â
âOh, I know you do, Sunshine, you havenât left my side since I sat down,â he teased. She rolled her eyes as she clenched her jaw.Â
âYou are literally the most annoying person on the planet,â she forced out as she stood up from her position, her body completely standing above him, perfectly in his line of sight. He was shamelessly admiring each curve, each gorgeous part of her. âDonât look at me like that,â she let out as she started walking away, covering her body with the towel.
âYou seriously cannot still be mad at me for shoving you into the lake that day,â he expressed as he jogged towards her, she was surprisingly fast.Â
Stopping dead in her tracks she spun around, facing him. He stumbled back as he wasnât prepared for her to stop. Her face was scrunched together as she took in a sharp breath. His eyes were staring hard at her glossed lips, craving the taste of her lips.
âDo you really think thatâs why I donât like you? Some stupid childhood argument?â
âI mean yeah, that whole year I just kept doing it,â he said, nearly proud of his behavior. He swallowed hard as he felt his heart beat fast.
âI donât like you because youâre cocky and rude and think youâre a god just because youâre good at hockey. You think you can do whatever you want because girls think youâre hot!â she shouted towards him, the towel becoming loose on her frame. She pulled it off, scrunching it into a ball in her hands before she slowly started walking backwards away from him.Â
âAre you one of those girls?â he asked, ignoring everything else that she said. She scoffed while shaking her head. She spun around, meeting his gaze. Her jaw clenched tightly.Â
âI couldnât be less attracted to you,â she said as she scanned his features, âI donât think losers are hot,â she expressed harshly before she walked back down the dock towards her lake house. The towel was still in her hand, giving Jack a full view of her frame. The way her hips swayed back and forth as she walked away from him. He dropped his head, taking in a deep breath.
âWow,â he mumbled, taking in a deep breath.
She met his gaze, dramatically rolling her eyes as she continued towards the garage. Her four other friends pulled up in two other cars, nearly immediately after it began to open. The two other cars were full to the brim of luggage.Â
He smiled proudly to himself as he continued watching her. Cole beside him started laughing as he stood up from his seat. âY/N, do you guys need help bringing the luggage inside?â he shouted. Y/Nâs lips curled up into a grin.
âThat would be great, Cole!â she shouted back, warmly. Cole chuckled as himself and the rest of the boys jogged the short distance towards the other lake house. Jack stood up and walked towards the two cars, greeting Reagan and Harry as they climbed out of the car.
âThought you guys couldnât make it!â Jack said excitedly as he hugged Harry before he hugged Reagan.Â
âWeâre only here for the first week, but itâll be fun!â Reagan said as she pulled away from Jack. âHowâs your shoulder?â she asked as she glanced towards the small scar on his shoulder.Â
âItâs good, I just have to keep up with my physical therapy while Iâm here,â he said softly. Y/N watched from a distance, his tone was soft and kind. Something sheâs observed over the last two years. Ever since his little brother joined the league, something about Jackâs attitude has changed.Â
She swallowed hard as she walked towards the small group. She smiled towards her friends, glanced towards Jack. She quickly hugged Reagan and Harry before she opened the backseat, pulling a suitcase out. âWhat no hug for me, Sunshine?â he teased as he waited for his turn to take a bag. She placed the suitcase on the ground, pulling the handle up.Â
âWhen have I ever hugged you Mr. People pay to see me play?â she said, teasing him right back. His mouth fell open, shocked as he began to chuckle.Â
âYouâre never going to let me live that down, are you?â he let out as he took a hold of a bright blue suitcase. She shook her head as she followed the rest of the friend group inside of her lake house.Â
Usually on her first day at the house, all of her friends and herself would clean the hell out of the house. Since it has been left untouched for multiple months. She sighed as she excitedly stood in the center of the living room, already anticipating the potential events that may occur.Â
She sat beside Chole as the NHL draft was beginning. It was obvious in the whole hockey world that Jack was getting drafted first overall. Despite that knowledge, he was still terrified he would fall to a lower draft ranking. But as the New Jersey Devils began to name their selection, there was no doubt in anyone's mind that it was Jack.Â
As his name was called, his smile was wide. It was a genuine smile, that was never pointed towards Y/N. Her own lips curled upward as she watched him hug his brothers. His younger brother first, and then his older brother. He began walking down the aisle towards the stage.
Sure, she hated him but sheâs spent every summer with him for the last six years. It was a great moment to see. She pulled her phone from her pocket, pulling up his contact.
Y/N: Congrats, hotshot, donât let it go to your head ;)
It took several hours before Jack was able to reply. Being drafted first overall came with a lot of media. He laughed out loud as he saw the text message.Â
Jack: Donât worry Sunshine, it already hasÂ
It took a few minutes before she replied.
Y/N: Youâre going to be even more unbearable this summer arenât you?
Jack: Are you kidding? Iâm a delight
Y/N: Goodbyeee Jack
Jack: So you agree?
She watched as Luke placed her bright pink suitcase down onto the ground, it was one of two suitcases that she brought with her for the vacation. âThanks Lukey,â she mumbled as she took a hold of it and began walking towards her bedroom. She rested it onto her bed, a small smile on her lips. She began unzipping it.
Herself and this specific group of friends already have a routine that they have. Everyone instantly unpacks and begins cleaning so they can start drinking by five. Itâs worked for the last two years. She began pulling her swimsuits out first as she began to find the pairs first before she shoved them into the dresser.
Spinning around, she finds Jack leaning against the door. âOh my god,â she let out fast. She planted a hand against her chest. He dropped his head while laughing.Â
âIâm sorry,â he let out as he took a step inside of the bedroom. Glancing down towards his feet for a brief second before he awkwardly pulled up his swim trunks. âIs Parker joining you guys later tonight?â Jack asked, swallowing hard.
It was weird for her group to arrive first for the three week vacation. But it was the summer after Jackâs rookie year. So the boys were all traveling from everywhere. They were arriving later in the night. But it was nice for Y/N to enjoy several hours with Parker. Her boyfriend for the last six months. He was great, kind, too nice for his own good.Â
Her friend group was all laying in the living room, tipsy already from day drinking. Reagan and Harry were asleep on top of each other on the couch. Chloe and Jacob were whispering to one another as they were switching from their heads resting on each otherâs shoulders. Ollie and Melanie were gone, probably off in their bedroom together. Brandon and Sasha were in the kitchen making more drinks for themselves. Y/N was sitting in Parkerâs lap as she was applying aloe to his bright red cheeks.Â
âI told you to sunscreen, Baby,â she whispered as she slowly ran her fingertips along his cheeks, he winced as the gel was cold on his skin.Â
âI thought I could handle it,â he whispered jokingly. She rolled her eyes playfully as she heard the front door being pulled open. She didnât intentionally forget to tell Parker about the pack of boys that would be joining them in the summer. It was so normal for the six of the guys to be next door that she forgot it may not be for Parker. He furrowed his eyebrows, taking a grip of her thighs protectively as he watched all six of the guys enter the house.
âSunshine! Why are you guys not on the boat drunk already! You know thatâs how this works!â Jack shouted. He stopped short seeing Y/N sitting in Parkerâs lap. His eyes widened slightly as he scanned the sleepy couples around them all. âYou guys pregame too hard?â he further pressed.
âWhoâs this guy?â Parker asked, delicately shoving Y/N off of his lap. She plopped down beside him, resting her hand onto his thigh.Â
âJack, Quinn, Luke, Trevor, Cole, and Dylan,â she said quietly as she pointed to each boy. Jack smirked as he met Parkerâs gaze. âBoys, this is Parker, my boyfriend,â she said as she slowly stood up, suddenly self conscious of the bikini covering her frame. Parker stood up and rested a protective hand on her hip.
Quinn shoves past Jack, becoming front and center, âNice to meet you, man. The house next door is ours, and those three are our friends,â Quinn explained, at first pointing to himself and his brothers before he pointed to their friends. Parker nodded slightly, looking back towards Jack before he shook Quinnâs hand.Â
âSo you all will be here for the whole time weâre here?â Parker asked. Quinn nodded. âGreat,â Parker expressed sarcastically as he forced a smile onto his lips. âLetâs get to drinking again, shall we Babe?â he asked as he forced his gaze towards Y/N. She forced a smile on her lips as she nodded towards him.
~~~
She was laying on the beanbag in the basement of the Hughes lake house. Parker was playing pool with a few of the other boys. Y/N was drunk as she was scrolling through her Instagram feed for the fifteenth time that night as she kept seeing the same pictures over and over again.Â
Jack was not in the current game as he sat down beside Y/N. She groaned as she dropped her phone beside her head, âWhat, Hotshot?â she questioned as she shifted her drunken gaze towards him. He smirked as he took a deep breath.Â
âIâm a washed up draft pick remember?â he said as he brought the beer bottle towards his lips. âNot a hotshot anymore,â he mumbled. She gasped drunkenly as she smacked her hand against his thigh. It was barely a tap but his attention fully switched over to Y/N.
âDonât say that,â she scolded as she sat up. Her eyes widened as she blinked slowly, trying to regain her balance. Despite her not even moving in the process.Â
âItâs a transition into the b-best league in the world, Jack, youâre a kid playinâ against like-what- thirty year olds? Youâre still a hotshot, Hotshot. Youâll f-find your way back,â she explained. Jack smiled as he met her gaze. His lips fell into a pout as he admired her eyes.Â
âI think thatâs the nicest thing youâve ever said to me, Y/N,â he mumbled, a genuine soft smile formed on his lips as he scooted towards her subconsciously.
âWhat, no Sunshine?â she asked, as she scanned his features. Was he always this pretty? She found herself thinking.Â
âYou miss it?â he teased. She laughed while she leaned back into the beanbag.Â
âA little,â she mumbled. He laughed as he shook his head. Parker watched the interaction from afar, Jack met Parkerâs gaze. He cleared his throat as he shifted his gaze back down towards his lap.
Parker leaned down and hit the 8-ball into the pocket he needed to, ending the game. The boys cheer. âY/Nâs falling asleep over there, Iâm gonna take her to bed,â he mumbled, politely smiling towards the small group of guys. He walked towards Jack and Y/N.
Without looking towards Jack, he reached down, taking a hold of Y/Nâs waist, âCome on, beautiful, letâs get you to bed,â he whispered. She hummed as she rested her head onto his shoulder as she wrapped her legs around his waist. Parker took a hold of her thighs as he carried her up the stairs out of the Hughesâs basement.Â
Jack watched as the pair left the basement, he leaned his head against the beanbag as he began peeling at the wet label of the beer in his hand. His heart fluttered as the words Y/N said circled his mind. Heâs heard those words a thousand times but something about it coming from her felt different. She hated him and he knew that but she still felt that he could be a success. He sighed as the boys shouted towards him to join in on the next round.
âWe broke up a few months ago,â she let out sadly as she opened the drawer as she tossed her bikinis inside. His eyes widened.Â
âOh man, Iâm sorry, Sunshine. You guys were good together,â he mumbled as he crossed his arms over his chest.
âItâs weird not having him here. It was the new normal, you know?â she explained, her voice cracking in the process. He nodded, crossing his arms over his chest. If he was being honest, he wished he hated the guy but he was impossible to hate. He was genuinely the nicest guy heâs ever met. He was convinced they were going to end up married. âOur lives just went separate ways, thatâs all.â She said not-so-convincingly
âYeah, Iâm sorry,â he let out while he smiled sadly.Â
âYeah me too, I have to hang out with you six for the whole three weeks. Iâm not third wheeling any of them,â she lightened the subject. He barked out a laugh.Â
âIt is not that bad, Y/N,â he mumbled as Trevor stepped into the bedroom.
âHarry said you and Parks broke up?â Trevor asked, shocked to say the least. She simply nodded. âDamn, Iâm sorry, Y/N. He was awesome,â Trevor mumbled before he walked out of the room.Â
She scoffed, a laugh leaving her throat. Jack furrowed his eyebrows as he stepped towards her, kicking the door shut with his foot, âWhat really happened with you two?â Jack asked in a hushed tone.
She laughed dryly as she wiped a sudden tear on her cheek, âLike I would tell you, Jack,â she muttered as she shook her head.Â
He clenched his jaw as he rolled his eyes. âCome on, Y/N, didnât we bury this years ago?âÂ
âI have been nothing but nice to you all summer and you still treat me like Iâm an asshole!â Jack shouted as he tossed his hands to the side, âIâve apologized for every dumbass thing Iâve done over the years, but you still treat me like dirt, Sunshine!âÂ
âSee that! That right there is why I am still pissed at you and I still donât like you! You act like years of teasing and making fun of me will just go away because you apologized!â She took a small step towards him. He took in a shaky breath as he scanned her fuming features. âAn-And stop calling me Sunshine! I know itâs because you think Iâm a buzzkill! Itâs not funny, itâs not cute! Iâm over it!âÂ
âWhat do you want me to do?! If endless apologizes wonât help you like me then what would you like me to do then?! I can get on my knees-â he spoke, getting on his knees, âIâll beg! Iâll do whatever you want, Sun-Y/N,âÂ
âGet up! Why do you want me to like you so much? Weâve spent nine years hating each other. Why do we need to start being friends?â she let out, staring down towards him. His eyes were soft yet, the smirk on his lips was full of anger. He stood up, meeting her gaze, they were standing near inches away from one another.
âI never hated you, Y/N. That was all you. I like making you mad. Youâre really hot when you yell at me. What can I say?â he mumbled, a dry laugh leaving his lips. He took a step back. His eyes widened slightly as he finally processed the words that left his lips. He took a shaky breath as he looked deeply into her eyes. âI think-â he took a deep breath, âI think you like it when I piss you off, Sunshine, you get all hot and bothered with it too,âÂ
She felt like her heart was beating so hard it would break out of her chest. âI donât-get hot and bothered with it. I get angry. You are the most infuriating person I have ever met!â she expressed, her gaze slowly dipping down to his lips. He was right, he did make her entire body hot and needy for his touch.
âYou are the most exhausting person I have ever met,â he let out, his gaze on her lips too.Â
âYou better start liking me before you cheat on your boyfriend with me. I really like the guy. I donât want to do that to him,â he rested his hand onto her hip, gripping it somewhat tightly. âYou canât pretend you donât like the way I make you feel,â he whispered into her ear before he began walking away.
âI donât! I would never cheat on Parker. Let alone cheat on him with you!â she shouted out. She was grateful that everyone had gone grocery shopping, leaving the pair alone. Jack and Y/N were the only ones still asleep when everyone else left.
âThen you better start liking me because the longer you hate me the more you want me,â he let out, winking before he walked out of her living room. She scoffed as she stared towards the door that he walked out of.
He was right. Damnit, he was right.
âBarely, that was like our worst argument ever,â she expressed, a chuckle leaving her lips. She sat on the end of her bed, leaning slightly into her suitcase. Jack followed in pursuit, sitting beside her. Their knees were touching.Â
âYou stopped hating me, so it worked,â he whispered. She turned her head, met his gaze, smiling softly.Â
âI still donât like you,â she countered, raising her eyebrows. He rolled his eyes playfully.
âWhat happened with Parks?â he switched the subject, his tone genuine as he pressed his lips together. She continued looking into his eyes, he was being kind.Â
Sure, she hasnât fully hated him in years. But she still didnât want to be comforted by him, he was the last person who she would go to about things. She took a deep breath as she brushed a few pieces of hair away from her face.Â
âI found out he had another girlfriend,â she mumbled. Jackâs eyes widened as his mouth fell open. âHis work trips were really trips to go visit her,â
âThat fucking dick,â Jack let out while shaking his head.
âIâm just glad I never followed through moving in with him,â she let out as she turned her gaze towards her hands. Her freshly manicured hands for the vacation. They were red.Â
âHere I was thinking you two would end up engaged soon. Idiot,â he said while he took a deep breath. She rolled her eyes as she laughed. âIâm serious, I swore you two were end game,â he expressed. She stood up, a small smirk on her lips as she pulled the door open. She leaned her head against the door as she stared towards Jack.Â
âCan you leave my room so I can unpack and clean, please?â He stared towards her suspiciously before he began walking out of the door. Stopping short, only a few inches away from her face. âIâll see you later, Hotshot,â she mumbled. He rolled his eyes playfully before he walked out of the room, leaving her alone.
~~~
It had been several hours since the house was cleaned, it was well into the night. Everyone was sitting together around the fire pit. Quinn was in charge of the fire. Y/N sat alone, on the blanket she had set up for herself. She sat with her legs crossed as she sipped on the seltzer Quinn had bought the group.
It was definitely the most lonely she has felt in months. Watching each of her closest friends sit together close and coupley. She missed that feeling, but the memories were tampered with the knowledge that it was all a lie. She pouted as she stared towards the orange glow.Â
âSunshine, you gonna share or am I gonna have to get my ass wet on the grass?â Jack asked as he returned with a beer bottle in his hand as Cole was walking towards his usual seat. She rolled her eyes as she scooted away from the center of the blanket to allow him to sit down beside her. He grunted as he scooted closer to her, their shoulders bumping into one another.Â
He leaned his head towards her, his lips nearly touching her ear, âYou feeling better?â his voice sent shivers down her spine. She tilted her head, meeting his gaze. Their lips are only a few inches apart. She simply nodded. He hummed as he pulled his head back.Â
âWhatâs so secretive?â Trevor teased as he leaned his elbows onto his thighs. His voice grasped the attention of everyone surrounding the firepit. Jack glanced towards Y/N before he shifted his gaze towards Trevor.Â
She took a deep breath as she forced a smile onto her face. Tilting her head to the side, âYou know how you guys think Parker is this amazing guy?â she began, she was drunk; probably the most drunk sheâs been at the lake house in years. The boys all collectively shared awkward glances. âHe had another girlfriend! He was fully dating someone else the entire relationship, but he had a problem with Jack and I!â she barked out a laugh.
Jack shifted his gaze towards Y/N, his face full of confusion. She rolled her eyes as she took a shaky breath. âHe thought that I was cheating on him with Jack!âÂ
âLike we would have sex,â she said while pointing between herself and Jack. Her laughter soon stopped with the memory of their last argument floating through her mind. âBut nope, he was so self-conscious because he was the one cheating. So Trevor, thatâs whatâs so secretive,âÂ
âHe thought we were having sex?â Jack asked quietly. She turned her head to meet Jackâs gaze. She simply nodded. âWow,â he mumbled as he dropped his head, staring towards his beer.Â
Chloe stood up from her seat as she handed her drink towards her boyfriend. âY/N, letâs get you to bed,â she mumbled.
âWhy? Because I told everyone the truth? Iâm sorry if that disappoints you all. I know you all think he was so awesome,â she let out while her eyes were filled with tears.Â
âY/N, come on,â Chloe mumbled, gripping Y/Nâs arm and lifting her up from the ground. She didnât protest as she followed Chloe towards the house.Â
Everyone stayed silent for a moment, processing that someone they thought was their friend could be lying for so many years. Jack kept replaying the part where she had said that Parker thought they were having sex. Was it that obvious that he liked her? Maybe I had feelings for her?
âWhy would Parker think you two were having sex?â Ollie asked. Jack lifted his head, pouted his lips as he shook his head slightly. Cole chuckled as he rolled his eyes.
âJack has had the hots for Y/N since he was twelve,â Cole let out, he was drunk as well. His filter was long gone. Jackâs eyes widened as he shifted his gaze towards Cole.
âThanks for that,â he said through gritted teeth.Â
âYouâre welcome,â Cole said, completely missing the sarcasm.
Jack rolled his eyes as he took in a sharp breath. âI never acted on anything. I mean sheâs spent most of the time Iâve known her hating me,â he explained while shrugging his shoulders.
âYeah and you liked pissing her off because it turned you on,â Cole continued, clearly needing to go to bed himself.
âAlright! Cole, maybe you should head to bed too!â Jack silenced him as he swallowed hard, shyly looking towards the crowd of couples to his left.Â
Cole nodded, standing up. He stumbled slightly as Trevor took a hold of his shoulders, guiding him towards the Hughes house. Jack clenched his jaw as he stared towards the bottle for a second before he brought it towards his lips, chugging the rest of his beer.
âIâm never telling him anything ever again,â he mumbled as he dropped the beer bottle to his side. He met Harryâs gaze, suddenly feeling the need to defend himself.Â
âI donât know why, I just liked making her mad. We got into it-argued- a few years ago and that was the last time we really went at each otherâs throats. Weâve been friends since?â he explained. âI mean I wouldnât help someone cheat on their boyfriend. Even if I knew Parker was a dick,âÂ
Harry furrowed his eyebrows as he crossed his arms over his chest. âAlright, I wasnât going to say anything but Reagan and I heard that argument. We thought this whole time you two were secretly having sex,â Harry explained. Jackâs eyes widened.
âYou what?!â Jack let out loudly. Everyone else besides Harry and Reagan began dispersing away from the firepit, all of them heading towards the Hughes house. Despite half of them that sleep at Y/Nâs. âDid you tell Parker that?!â Jack asked.
Harry clenched his jaw as he nodded his head. Jack scoffed while rolling his eyes. âI mean you told her to stop hating you before you two have sex!â he let out a chuckle, âI mean, we thought she still hated you-â
âSo you made an assumption and probably ruined their entire relationship. Thatâs fucking awesome of you, Harry,â Jack stood up, getting ready to walk towards his house.
âYou fucking ruined it man, you clearly have feelings for her!â
âI think sheâs attractive, thatâs fucking different! Why would I have feelings for someone that hated me!?â he stood up shouting again.Â
âCole said youâve had feelings for her since you were twelve!â Harry shouted back.
âFirst off, Coleâs drunk barely knows what heâs saying. Second off he said I had the hots for her. Two very fucking different things!â Jack defended. He took a deep breath, meeting Harryâs gaze. âAnd if I did have feelings for her, I would treat her a hell of a lot better than how Parker treated her. Even if she hated me first,â he said simply before he started walking away towards his house.Â
After a few seconds he stopped short, spinning around to meet Harryâs gaze. His anger and frustration quickly dissipated. He took a deep breath. âY/N didnât cheat on Parker with me. I only said that to rile her up. I never brought it up again.â he met Harryâs gaze. âYou only did what you thought you had to do and I get that, I just-I donât have feelings for her. Iâm sorry for getting pissed at you. Iâm drunk and I get snappy when Iâm tired.âÂ
Reagan tapped Harryâs arm encouragingly. âIâm-Iâm sorry too. I just Y/Nâs practically my sister and Parks and I got close over the years. I didnât like seeing anyone get hurt, I shouldâve asked you two about it before I went and told Parks,â he explained. Jack simply nodded before he left to walk towards his house.
Reagan took a deep breath, âHow do you boys just scream at one another and then apologize and get over a minute later? How is that even possible?âÂ
Harry laughed while shaking his head, âI donât know, it just happens,â he mumbled.
~~~
Jack jolted awake, his breathing heavy as he shook his head. His dream from last night flashed in his mind for a moment. A scene of Y/N sprawled out on his mattress, completely naked awaiting for him to lean down and kiss her lips. That damn pout was on her lips as she looked towards him desperately. He shut his eyes, feeling his boxers tighten as the dream continued to replay in his mind.Â
âFuck,â he mumbled as he stood up, forcing himself to try and occupy his mind with something else. Except he turned around to see his mattress. The vision of Y/N on his mattresses plastered in front of him, she was stunning and desperate in his dream, he wanted to see it in real time. He wanted to be with her. He clenched his jaw as he walked towards his bathroom. Needing to shower away his thoughts.Â
He stood underneath the hot water, staring down towards his erection, mad that his thoughts were sending him there. Itâs been years since he thought that way about her, he thought he was finally over it. But she was single again. Maybe even a little desperate. Or he was the desperate one.Â
Maybe he needed to have sex with her once, maybe itâll be a one time thing. One and done, get her out of his system. He sighed as he finished his shower, still half-hard as he pulled on his swim trunks.Â
He jogged down the steps to the voices of everyone else in the house awake. The air was tense as Jack entered the living room. The rest of the boys were awake, sitting and chatting. They all shifted their gaze towards Jack. âHarry and I already apologized and are over it, alright?â Jack rasped out as he stumbled towards the coffee maker.
âIâm sorry for my drunk ass,â Cole rasped out, his eyes barely open. He was very hungover. âI gotta learn to shut the fuck up,â
âYeah you do, but itâs fine. I just hope Y/Nâs alright,â he mumbled as he waited for the Kurig to pour him his cup. He spun around, rubbing his hand across his face. The boys shared knowing glances again. âWhat?â Jack asked, his voice cracking slightly.Â
âSo Caufieldâs right? You have feelings for her?â Luke asked, crossing his arms over his chest. Jack took a deep breath.
âI think sheâs hot, I donât have feelings for her,â he clarified as he pulled the mug from the coffee maker, taking a small sip. His hangover, disappearing nearly instantly. Jack rolled his shoulder back, groaning slightly.Â
~
It was a handful of hours later and any tension between the group dissipated within a few minutes. They were all laughing and smiling together again on the boat. Y/Nâs family has a slightly bigger boat that fits everyone. The Hughesâs boat is much smaller. Y/N was sitting beside Chloe as she was talking about something that was going on with her new school district that she was working for.
Jack was sitting beside Quinn, subtly looking towards Y/N every chance he could. âAre you sure?â Quinn asked Jack. At first, Jack didnât hear him as he continued glancing towards Y/N. âJack, are you sure?â he let out again.Â
Jack shifted his gaze towards Quinn, âSure about what?â he asked as he reluctantly glanced back towards Y/N.
âIf you look towards Y/N one more time I think you might burn a hole into her forehead,â he teased. Jack smacked his arm as he dropped his gaze towards his lap.Â
âShut up,â Jack mumbled as he stared towards his hands. Quinn had stopped the boat at the center of the lake, spinning around to face everyone.
âWho wants to go swimming?â he asked. The boys nearly instantly jumped into the lake without hesitation. Quinn slowly pulled his t-shirt from his frame, dropping it to his side before he jumped into the water, landing near Dylan. Jack stood at the opposite end of the boat, watching Y/N and the other girls slowly get ready to climb into the water. Reagan and Chloe were the first to jump into the water.Â
âJack donât you fucking think about it-â she expressed, pointing a finger towards him but it was too late he was already making a beeline towards her. âJack!â she shouted as he took a hold of her legs, tossing over his shoulder before he jumped into the lake, tossing her in with him.
He soon resurfaced, shaking his head of the water. She slowly resurfaced after him, pouting her lips as she splashed him. âI was going to jump in, asshole!â she said, teasingly. He smirked as he began to splash her back.Â
âAre you cheating on me?â Parker asked out of nowhere. Y/N was mid bite of her sandwich when he asked. She stared towards him blankly as she chewed quickly. Swallowing hard, she rested her sandwich down onto the plate while she stood up.Â
âNo, why would you think that?â she asked while shaking her head. Her heart was pounding hard against her chest. Almost as if she was guilty. But she wasnât. The only thing she was guilty of was sex dreams with other people. Mainly just Jack.Â
She hasnât seen him in six months and on and off she would have a very hot and heavy dream where they would be having sex. Anywhere and everywhere they could between their lake houses.
âAre you and Jack having sex? I canât stop this nagging idea that every time we go to the lakehouse you are sleeping with him!â he shouted. His voice was much louder than it was before. She scoffed, her lips curling up in a smile. Her fantasies were the furthest she would consider going with Jack Hughes.Â
âThatâs fucking crazy! I donât like him! Why would I ever consider having sex with him?â she let out, still laughing.
âWhy are you laughing?!â he asked.
âBecause it is ridiculous to me that you would believe that Jack, who lives in New Jersey, and I are having sex!â
~Three Days Later~
The group was starting to disperse back to their respective rooms. It was well past two in the morning, everyone was drunk and stumbling. Except Jack and Y/N. They were tipsy, but more sober than their friends. Y/N walked a handful of her friends back towards her house, watching each of them enter their rooms. She stood still in the living room letting her tipsy mind wander.
Which led to her feet wandering.Â
She stepped outside, the chill of the night air hit her skin creating goosebumps all over her skin.Â
She walked towards the backdoor of the Hughes house as she met Jackâs gaze through the glass door.Â
He bit his bottom lip as he pulled the door open.Â
âItâs late, Sunshine,â he mumbled as he pulled his lips between his teeth, running his tongue along his lips. She scanned his features, his eyes darkened as he scanned her frame. It was only covered by a thin black bikini. She stepped towards him, gently resting her hand onto his bare chest. He took small steps backwards.
âI know,â she mumbled, her gaze only on his lips. They would drift towards his eyes, every few seconds. But she was so focused on his lips.Â
âNothing good happens after two AM, thatâs that stupid rule you follow from that show you like,â he could hear his heartbeat. He knew what she wanted, he knew what he wanted. But what if the others find out?
âItâs from How I Met Your Mother and itâs not stupid,â she muttered as her hands started trailing his body, feeling his skin rise in goosebumps under her touch. Her eyes drifted down towards his body, his tanned frame was hard to not admire. Her fingertips grazed the small bump of a scar line from his surgery he had. He looked over her features, she wasnât thinking straight. She couldnât have been.
âYouâre drunk, Y/N,â he let out, feeling his body grow tense under her touch. His lips were starting to tingle from anticipation.Â
âIâve had two shots and a beer, Jack, Iâm not drunk,â she lifted her head slightly. Meeting his eye.Â
He took in a shaky breath as he took both of his hands and took a hold of her cheeks. He pulled her towards him, slamming his lips against hers as if a bomb would go off if he didnât. She moaned against his lips as she rested her hands onto his chest muscles. Their tongues connected. His hands slowly glid from her cheeks down towards her neck, one hand ran through her hair as his other kept a soft hold of her neck.Â
His thumb caressed the side of her neck slowly before he pulled away. âWhat-â she trailed off as he leaned down and took a hold of her thighs, lifting her up from the ground, tossing her onto his shoulder. âJack what are you doing?â she asked as she rested her hands onto the center of his back as she was being carried upstairs.Â
âHold on-â he mumbled as he turned the corner towards his room. A room she has only seen a handful of times. He not so gently laid her down onto the bed, his eyes lit up at the sight of her on his bed. His nights have been filled with dreams of her laying exactly like that. With him hovering above her. She took in a deep shaky breath as he smiled towards him, she inched back slightly, trying to give them more room.
Jack shut the door and quickly locked it. He quickly climbed on top of her, supporting himself with his good arm. His other arm quickly took a hold of her thigh, putting their bodies closer together.
Immediately his lips pressed hard against hers as his grip on her thigh tightened. She moaned against his mouth as she ran her fingers through the ends of his growing hair.Â
His breathing quickened as he slowly pulled his lips away from hers as he slowly pressed his lips against her jaw. Tilting her head back, her entire neck and chest was in view. She was breathing hard as she continued running her fingers through the ends of his hair, tugging slightly. His lips trailed down her neck, not leaving a mark on her skin. He knows he wouldnât hear the end of it if he did.Â
Her back arched, as he slowly glided his fingertips towards the small clip of her bikini on her back. He looked up towards her, pleading that she allow him to see her. She lowered her gaze, meeting his desperate gaze. All she could muster up was a nod as he quickly unclipped the top. With her assistance the top came off. He tilted back slightly, taking in her boobs.Â
She suddenly felt shy, no man, not even Parker, admired her like this. Jack soon leaned towards her, connecting their lips once more, âYouâre so beautiful,â he mumbled against her lips. She didnât reply, only started letting her own hands wander towards his swim trunks.Â
He pulled away from her lips as he began kissing and running his tongue along her skin once more. She was breathing heavily as his tongue and lips connected with her boob. She took in a sharp breath as she tilted her head back. His other hand began massaging the other one, as he took in every single breath and small utter leaving her lips. He continued lower for only a few seconds before he pulled away.
He climbed up, meeting her gaze as he slowly leaned down and kissed her lips, less urgently. More sensually as her hands slowly toyed with the waistband of his swim trunks.Â
He hummed as he slowly lowered his lips again, kissing and sucking the skin right below her collarbone. He was convinced that she had a swimsuit that covered it. He thought the longer his lips remained at that certain spot, creating a red jagged bruise, she would tell him to stop but he continued.Â
Once he was satisfied he stood up from the bed, smirking towards her. He pulled off his swim trunks, revealing himself to her. Her eyes widened as she smirked towards him. He winked towards her as he slowly walked towards her, taking a hold of her swim bottoms. He met her gaze briefly before he slowly began to pull the bottoms off of her frame. Slowly revealing herself to him.Â
His fantasy was in front of him, she was laying completely naked, desperately looking towards him for more. Heâs never made it past this part, never made farther in his dreams. But here he was, climbing on top of her as he kissed her lips urgently. His free hand slowly wandered down towards her clit.Â
He slowly began running small tight circles, she moaned against his lips as she tilted her head back. âShh,â he pointed towards the wall, warning her that Trevorâs room was right beside them. She nodded absentmindedly as she pulled his head towards her again, connecting their lips.Â
He pulled away again, a whine left her lips. âI think youâre gonna like this a lot better, Sunshine,â he whispered before he slowly climbed down her frame. He took a hold of her thighs, spreading them apart, getting a look of how wet she was for him.Â
He leaned towards her, slowly running his thumb along her clit, hearing her squirm at his touch. He smiled before he leaned towards her. His tongue slowly circled her center. A breathy moan left her lips as she gripped the pillow behind her. After a few seconds, he took her clit in his mouth.
âOh my god,â she let out as she tilted her head back. He hummed against her body, sending an electric set of shivers through her body. Her legs tensed around his head as he slowly pulled away from her, he pressed sloppy but delicately kissed from her center, into her inner thigh before he climbed up her frame, kissing her jawline before he connected their lips once more in a sloppy dazed state.
âJ-Jack,â she let out, tilting her head back, her breathing strained as her lips were swollen. He smirked as he met her gaze.Â
He took a hold of his hard on and ran his hand up and down it a few times before he slowly leaned down, aligning himself with her center. He slowly pushed inside, he glanced towards her watching her tilt her head back. He thrusted a few times before he leaned down, taking a hold of her thigh.Â
He pressed his lips against hers as he thrusted hard into her. She let out a breathy moan against his lips, too overwhelmed to kiss him properly. He smirked as he pressed his lips against her jaw, encouragingly. âYouâre doing so good, Sunshine,â he mumbled against her ear.Â
He was already feeling close to his climax as her breathy moans continued leaving her lips. Her hands found his back, digging her nails into his skin as she was nearly at her own climax. Jack slowed his pace, not wanting the moment to be over just yet, âNo,â she let out barely above a whisper.Â
âSunshine, you gotta be patient,â he teased, a smirk on his lips as he took a hold of her jaw, turning her gaze towards him. âLook at me,â he mumbled before he slammed his lips against hers as he quickened his pace. He continued thrusting hard against her as she was holding her breath, trying to keep the moans inside.
âIâm gonna-â she mumbled as she tilted her head back as her release happened quickly as she tightened around him. After one more thrust he was reaching his climax.Â
He let out a breathy moan as he pulled out, âFuck,â he mumbled against her jawline. She took in a deep breath as her climax slowly ended. Her head tilted back towards him, admiring his features. The sweat formed on his forehead. She reached her hand up and brushed a few stray pieces of his hair away from his face.Â
He leaned towards her, pecking her lips briefly. âNot so patient are we, Sunshine?â he teased. She rolled her eyes, smacking her hand against his arm. âItâs okay, weâll work on it,â
He climbed away from her, taking a towel from the folded section beside his clean clothes. He sat beside her, slowly and delicately cleaning up the mess as he looked towards her, a small grin on his lips.
~~~
They didnât talk about it afterwards. It happened, it was great and they didnât talk about it. She kissed him one last time before she snuck out of the house and walked back to her own. She didnât know how to feel, she couldnât sleep. All she did was lay on her bed, staring towards the ceiling fan. She kept picturing him hovering above her, whispering things to her. His touch, his lips all over her body.Â
It was around eight in the morning when she woke up. Probably only an hour of sleep under her belt. She walked towards her bathroom, looking into the mirror to see the hickeys all over her chest. He wasnât as careful as she thought. She sighed as she walked towards the shower, turning on the hot water as she stepped inside.Â
After thirty minutes, she covered her frame with a hoodie as a pair of loose shorts. She entered the living room of her lakehouse to see Ollie and Melanie sitting on the couch watching the news. She smiled towards them awkwardly as she sauntered towards the kitchen.Â
Jack stepped out of his shower and smiled to himself as he met his own gaze in the mirror. He was still trying to process the events of last night. It was as if it was a dream, but it was far from it. He simply put on a pair of shorts as he climbed down the steps towards the living room, the grin on his lips not dissipating.Â
He lifted his head to see Trevor and Cole sitting on the couch watching Friends. Jack ignored them as he beelined towards the coffee pot. His back was facing Trevor and Cole as he was adding his K-cup to the Kurig. Trevorâs eyes lit up as he barked out a laugh.
âI told you I wasnât crazy!â Trevor laughed as he smacked his hand against Coleâs shoulder. Jack spun around, facing his friends.Â
âWhat?â Jack asked innocently.Â
âYou had sex last night!â Trevor shouted.Â
âWhat? No I didnât, I would know if I did,â he defended badly, the smirk on his lips was evidence enough.
âSo a ghost did that to your back?â Cole teased, as he pursed his lips forward.
âWhat?â he asked innocently again as he jogged towards the floor length mirror. He awkwardly checked his back to see long thin scratches along the top of his shoulders. A cocky grin formed on his lips. âI always forget to check that,â he mumbled, running his hand across his chin.Â
âSo what does this Tinder girl look like?â Cole asked. Jack shrugged.
âItâs none of your business,â Jack expressed, a grin to his lips.Â
Y/N kept her mug in her lap as she watched the TV screen silently with Ollie and Melanie. Ollie was whispering to Melanie, a few snickers leaving his lips. Y/N shifted her gaze towards the pair, furrowing her eyebrows harshly. He smiled politely as he remained silent as he shifted his gaze towards the screen.Â
Chloe stumbled down the steps with Jacob behind her. Y/N stayed silent, which was unusual of her. Any time she would not greet anyone, she always had something to hide. A secret circling her thoughts. Chloe stopped dead in her tracks, watching Y/N ignore her. She furrowed her eyebrows, suspiciously wandering towards Y/N.Â
âWhy didnât you say hi to me?â she asked harshly. Y/N shifted her gaze towards her.
âHi Chloe, good morning,â Y/N offered, a fake grin to her lips. Chloe peaked her head around the small hidden hickey just beneath her ear. Chloeâs eyes widened.
âYou had sex last night!â she accused as she pointed a finger towards her. Y/N fought the smile forming to her lips.
âI-I did not,â she said, completely blowing her cover. Chloe widened her eyes as she raised her eyebrows. Y/N sighed, dropping her gaze towards her lap. âI mightâve had sex last night, but I donât want to talk about it, okay?âÂ
âFine, but when you do wanna talk about it. I need all the details,â Chloe expressed as she walked towards the kitchen to get herself a cup of coffee as well.
~
Somehow the secret that Y/N and Jack hooked up remained quiet. No one was plotting to figure out who the person was. Chloe had a feeling the guy Y/N hooked up with was Jack. She has always silently rooted for them to get together, but she wasnât going to press the situation.Â
Ollie, Melanie, and Harry offered to drive everyone to the Zach Bryan concert they were attending later that night. The boys were all ready. Many dressed in similar attire as the girls were still getting ready. Y/N stood in her bathroom, trying to cover up the hickeys scattered around her boobs and collarbone. A knock hit her bathroom door, she jumped nervously.
Jack slowly slipped into the bathroom. His eyes lowered towards her chest, the half covered hickeys. His eyes widened, a small chuckle leaving his throat. âSorry,â he mumbled. She rolled her eyes playfully.Â
âItâs okay, heard Cole joking about your back. Sorry,â she said, smiling towards him through the mirror. He shrugged as he stood behind her, watching her apply the makeup to her body. âI might need a new outfit, I donât think I can cover all of these,â she let out defeatedly.Â
âYouâll look beautiful in anything,â he expressed genuinely. She smiled towards him.
âYou look very cute,â she mumbled towards him.Â
His eyes widened, he leaned towards her, âWas that a compliment, Sunshine?â he whispered into her ear. She rolled her eyes as she leaned forward, still attempting to cover the last one beneath her collarbone. âAre we going to talk about it?â he asked.Â
She sighed as she licked her lips nervously. âI donât know if we should make it more than a one time thing, Jack. I mean you live in Jersey, I just got a new job here. It wouldnât make sense,â she said, avoiding his gaze. He nodded.Â
He cleared his throat, âWell, Iâve got to be back in Jersey by September first. Letâs do our thing, whatever that may be and have this conversation then?â he mumbled, his head rested on her shoulder. She met his gaze through the mirror for only a moment before she nodded without hesitation. He took a hold of her hips as he spun her around, leaning her back against the bathroom counter.
He leaned towards her desperately as he kissed her. She giggled while taking a hold of his cheek, pulling him away from her. âShhh,â she forced out while laughing.
~
The concert was going as well as she couldâve expected. It was amazing, the group was amazing. Everyone was having a blast together. Something in the Orange began playing and Jack slowly walked up behind Y/N. She tilted her head back meeting his gaze, smiling up towards him. He wrapped his arms around her waist pulling her towards his chest.
They swayed back and forth, quietly singing along to the song together. Chloe, Cole, and Trevor huddled up as they watched the pair from a distance. Chloeâs jaw nearly hit the floor as she continued to stare towards them.Â
âNo fucking way!â Trevor shouted, he was barely audible as the concert was so loud. Cole and Trevor started shoving and directing their friends' attention towards Jack and Y/N.Â
âTo you, Iâm just a man, to me youâre all I am. Where the hell am I supposed to go?â Jack mumbled into her ear, kissing the skin just below it. She hummed as she tilted her head back, meeting his gaze as she pressed her lips against his.Â
âAre you kidding me!â Chloe shouted as she walked towards the pair. The music slowly faded as Zach was beginning his transition into the next song. âAre you kidding me?!â she said again as she stopped beside them. âI fucking knew it! I called it!â she yelled out.Â
Jack and Y/N dropped their heads as they slowly stepped apart, giggles leaving their lips. âWe donât even know what weâre doing yet! Calm down!â Y/N explained.
âOh-oh-oh okay, Iâll calm down when you two explain when this fucking happened!â
Focus focus focus focus
They played so well đâ¤ď¸
England NT â Nike FC Event at St. Georgeâs Park | Inside Access | FIFA World Cup Qatar 2022
pretty sure i could romanticise anything, i am deeply delusional.
my glasses are always dirty but it's fine. i've seen enough.
Beyond beautiful (:
Summary: âIâm tired of acting like Iâm not in love with you,â â Or, the one where two people are experiencing the worst year of their lives respectively. Falling in love shouldn't be that difficult on top of it all, right?
Pairing: Logan Sargeant x Fem! Reader (team photographer, skater girlâ˘, has tattoos and is vaguely bilingual)
Word count: 23.3k
Warnings: 18+ Minors DNI â Angst: panic attacks, anxiety, self-deprecation, mention of medication, anxiety disorders and ADHD. Reader has a shitty family as well. Smut: penetrative sex, they're needy as hell, otherwise very vanilla. Fluff: she fell first, he fell harder, a bunch of silent crushing on each other, a very sappy and happy ending. Other: inaccurate timeline and race results.
A/N: I'm back! I planned this before Zandvoort and before Logan got dropped and didn't feel like changing it to fit reality, so Logan gets to finish the season in this fictional universe. He also get's to go to Indycar because I'm sad and maybe delusional. Please tell me what you think âĄ
Oxfordshire, UK
The rain drizzled down as you cruised around the almost empty parking lot on your board, the drops making little sounds as they hit the brim of your rain hat. February in England wasnât that greatâno snow, just rain and cold weather. Awful, but doable for someone who had a skateboard stuck to their feet ninety percent of the year.Â
You were early, which was uncommon for you. But Angie had told you to come early, and you didnât want to screw up on what was technically your first day on the job. Having someone you saw as an older sister as your boss had its pros and cons.Â
âShould you really be skating in the rain?â Angie called out, standing underneath the awning above the main entrance, shielded from the rain. Her Williams-blue raincoat was pulled up to her chin, and you could see her visibly shiver from the cold.Â
You had received a similar jacket, amongst a lot of other team gear, in advance for your first day. It wasnât exactly your style, but you guessed that wasnât the point of having team gear in the first place. Or any kind of work uniform, really. The coat kept you warm and dry, that was all that you could ask for.Â
âCanât you see how slow Iâm going?â you protested, laughing at her cautiousness.Â
You knew what you were doing. It wasnât advised by anyone to skate when it was raining outside, but casually riding in a flat, empty parking lot at a slow speed, just to not get your shoes wet, wasnât dangerous. Not for you, at least. You had been skating for close to two decades.
Angie had asked you to take some pictures of the building, and then take pictures of all the team members as they arrived at the factory.Â
You had held a camera in your hands for almost as long as your feet had stood on a skateboard. The two interests kind of coexisted and fed off each other as you grew older. Only photography was able to make you money, though.Â
Youâd read in an article that the Williams factory was supposed to be modest in comparison to McLarenâs or Red bullâs spaceship-like buildings, but this was still huge to you. And you hadnât even gotten inside the building yet.Â
As cars filled the parking lot, you snapped photos of the people going inside. Mechanics, engineers, people on the communications teamâit seemed like everyone was present for this pre-season meetup. Maybe it was because it was the last one before the team flew off to Bahrain.Â
Some smiled at you as they spotted the big DSLR camera in your hands, others walked right past. Angie seemed to know almost everyone as she greeted them by the entrance. Sure, she was some kind of high-up marketing manager, but recognising so many people seemed excessive. Or maybe just impressive.Â
Sheâd given you a crash course in Formula 1 as she had hired you. You had heard her talk about her job on many occasions, even catching a race or two when it was on television, but you quickly realised that you didnât know half as much as you probably needed to.Â
It was hard for you to even pinpoint who were the Williamsâ drivers as they both came walking across the parking lot. Angieâs immediate perked attention and widened smile told you everything you needed to know. You would need to get good photos of them both.Â
You tried your best to remember who was who, and when you recalled that one raced under the Thai flag and the other for the US, it was quite easy.Â
Alex was tall, and happy. He walked with quick steps to get away from the light rain, greeting Angie with an effortless hug. He had no problem smiling when he saw you with the camera, raising his eyebrows at your stance on the skateboard.Â
Logan wasnât far behind. He looked younger, and less confident in the way he carried himself. His steps were slower as he too made his way under the awning. He reminded you of kids youâd gone to school with, with their boyish charm and cluelessness. He was young, and sweetâmaybe even beautiful.Â
You could see it all as you lifted your camera to spot him from the viewfinder. His smile didnât form as easily as Alexâs had done, but when it did, and he flashed you his stupidly perfect and pearly white American teeth, you couldnât help but feel how the corners of your lips turned upward. This was going to be a difficult year if you already were developing a minor crush on the first cute boy youâd seen.Â
âWhoâs Paddington?â Alex asked Angie after he had greeted her.Â
You could overhear him perfectly fine as you pretended to take some photos of the main building.Â
âWhat? Oh, because the red bucket hat?â she chuckled, shaking her head. âThatâs our new team photographer.âÂ
Logan too gave Angie a quick hug. After all, she was one of the more tolerable people forcing them to do social media content.Â
He laughed at the nickname Alex gave you. Logan wouldâve gone with Tony Hawk over Paddington, but maybe that was because he found the fictional little bear with a red hat and a blue coat to be a very British reference.Â
âShe looks about twelve,â Alex remarked, watching as you adjusted something on the lens, your movements precise and confident despite your youthful appearance.
Angie laughed again, the sound warm and contagious. âSheâs the same age as Logan.âÂ
Logan playfully pouted at his two colleagues joking. He guessed the both of you looked young. Maybe too young to be in such a professional setting.Â
âSheâs my best friendâs little sister. Iâm mostly being kind by offering her a chance to work with us,â Angie continued to explain, raising her voice slightly to get your attention.Â
She didnât really need to, because you had heard every single word of their conversation.Â
âThatâs her way of secretly telling you that Iâm severely underqualified for this job and Iâm using it as an excuse to travel the world,â you said under your breath, your gaze still fixated on the viewfinder as you slowly skated towards them.Â
Same, was what Logan immediately wanted to say, but instead he just laughed, unsure of how well his self-deprecating humour would translate.
You stepped off your board, before popping it up with your foot on the tail end to grab it with your hand. You hadnât expected them to laugh, because it wasnât exactly a joke. You guessed it kind of came across as one, though.
You told Alex and Logan your name, gently reaching out your hand to shake theirs, but Angieâs hand pulling down the brim of your hat over your eyes stopped you in your tracks.Â
âI have a feeling youâre going to be stuck with Paddington around here,â she laughed. Â
âThe Williams hat you gave me canât stand the rain,â you argued, fixing the hat back into place.Â
It was true. The cotton of the team hat she had given you wouldâve been drenched at this point. But you still appreciated her effort because she thought the hat was more your style than the classic baseball cap that most of the other employees sported.
âYouâre such a child, you know that, right?âÂ
That was something youâd heard all your life, because you somehow always turned out to be the youngest one at every family function. You didnât take it as an insult when Angie said it, though. She had valued what you brought to the table for as long as you could remember. Maybe that was the only child within her showing through.Â
âThatâs kind of on you, Angie,â you pointed out. âIf you hadnât been mostly kind, I wouldnât be here to annoy you.âÂ
You saw how Angie wanted to argue back, but was interrupted by the sound of your ringtone. Teenagers by My Chemical Romance. You had intention behind it when you initially picked it (something about rebellion and fuck the system), but now it was mostly a running joke that you couldnât let go of, no matter how many times you swapped phones.
You also loved the embarrassment that flashed over Angieâs face as it interrupted her. Alex and Logan couldnât help but laugh as you excused yourself to answer.Â
Logan watched as you slowly cruised over the parking lot, phone up to your ear as you talked to whoever it was over the phone. He heard you raise your voice, speaking in a language he didnât recognise, or at least didnât understand.
âHer family sort of⌠resents her? So, I did what I thought was right.â
Angie felt the need to explain as the three of them heard you start to argue. She knew it had to be your mother calling, because you had given up on arguing with your father already.
âIs she at least a good photographer?â Alex asked with a sigh.
âSheâs the best.âÂ
. . .
Melbourne, Australia
. . .
The season started with a whirlwind. You definitely hadnât mentally prepared for the challenge it would be to travel nonstop, and even if you had some downtime, the anxiety of always being on the move didnât leave your body. Before you had the chance to experience a new city, you had to be thinking of when you were going to the next one.Â
And you were rusty. You didnât yet have the right mindset to be in the position you were in, constantly forgetting things and not getting the perfect photos. Youâd done sports photography for a long time, but there was a difference in speed between x-games sports and fucking Formula 1.Â
That was why you found yourself back at the hotel in Melbourne, riding the lift to your floor to retrieve some equipment youâd forgotten in your room, your body teeming with nerves and embarrassment over what had just transpired. While Formula 1 was a travelling circus with a lot of important and famous people, you hadnât expected to actually run into anyone that would leave you speechless. You were usually too good at talking.Â
As you exited the lift, you spotted Logan in the hallway, looking like he was about to enter his own hotel room. Your speedy steps interrupted his actions, and even if you two hadnât really had a one-on-one conversation before, you had to tell someone about who you just ran into.Â
âI just made a fool out of myself in front of Keegan Palmer,â you exhaled loudly as your steps came to a stop in front of him.Â
âWho?â Logan questioned, holding the door to his room open, a little bit taken aback by your boldness.Â
âOlympic skateboarder,â you clarified. âHeâs kind of a big deal, and heâs friends with Lando somehow.âÂ
Logan remembered something about a famous skateboarder in the back of his mind as he let out a short laugh. âSo, what did you do? Ask for a selfie?â
âI wish. No, I just ran into them in the lobby and couldnât form a sentence because I was shocked. I literally froze,â you groaned, rubbing your temples as your emotions started to settle.Â
As they did, you took in Loganâs expression. While you hadnât necessarily talked much before, you had taken a lot of photos of him. He always portrayed a certain charm, even when he was focused on racing or unaware of the camera. He didnât do that now. Something seemed off with him from his blank stare at you. He was there, able to laugh at your awkward interaction, but he wasnât present.Â
âShouldnât you be at the paddock?â Logan asked after a moment of silence.Â
âI forgot an SD card in my hotel room,â you explained. âShouldnât you be at the paddock?â
His face twisted in disbelief. âYou havenât heard?âÂ
âHeard what?âÂ
âIâm not driving,â he answered plainly, but the words landed heavily. âAlex is taking my car because they donât have a spare chassis to repair the damage from his crash yesterday.âÂ
You blinked out of confusion as you raised your eyebrows. âIs that even allowed? Itâs your car.âÂ
âI donât know, but itâs probably for the better,â Logan shrugged with a certain nonchalance. âI donât want to make a big deal out of it.âÂ
âYouâre paying for a mistake that he made. It is a big deal,â you argued.Â
Youâd practically ran up to him to talk about your embarrassing moment that you had failed to even acknowledge what kind of mood he was in. That was a bad habit of yoursâbadly reading people and basically running them over with your talking.Â
And here he was, feeling like shit over a decision that no one thought was possible. He probably had no will to talk about some skateboarder with you. Â
You noticed the way his hands trembled slightly, holding a tight grip on the door to the point where his knuckles whitened. The realisation hit you at the same time his expression shifted, his bravado cracking under the weight of something much deeper, his breath coming quicker than normal.Â
âMate, are you okay?â you asked him softly.Â
âIâm fine,â he muttered, but his wavering voice betrayed him.
Logan wasnât angry at the team, or at Alex. He knew that it was the right decision because Alex would have a better chance to score points. He probably wouldâve made the same decision if he were team principal.Â
He knew he wasnât good enough to deserve a chance.
He knew he wasnât good enough to argue his case.Â
He knew he wasnât good enough.Â
It was killing him inside. Logan wanted to flee the scene. He wished he could rewind time five minutes and just walk into his hotel room instead of stopping when he heard your steps. He wouldnât have had to explain this to you. He wouldnât have had to feel this way in front of another person. It had been bad enough when he got the news in a conference room filled with team members.Â
This was different, thoughâyou two alone in a hotel corridor.Â
He felt like he was choking, like the feelings inside of him wanted to come out but he had no idea how to let them out. He couldnât get enough air in his lungs, no matter how heavily he breathed. Heâd never felt like this before.Â
âYouâre having a panic attack, dipshit,â you stated.Â
It sounded like you were joking, but in reality you were fighting concern with humour. You could see exactly what was happening to him, all too familiar yourself with the overwhelming feeling of when anxiety finally catches up with you. Â
Logan looked at you, eyes wide. âN-no, Iâm not. Iâve neverââ he stammered, shaking his head.
âYou havenât had one before? Oh, fuck.â
It hadnât even crossed your mind that people in their twenties couldâve gone their entire lives without experiencing an anxiety attack. You could handle them quite well after years of being a miserable child and teen, but Logan didnât look like he knew what was even going on. The first one wouldnât always be the worst one, but right now, this would be hard on him.Â
You took a step closer, your heart suddenly racing. You didnât know if he wanted you to touch him, so you acted hesitantly at first. But by his shocked expression and shaking hands, you knew that he needed help calming down. He looked lost, like the ground had suddenly shifted beneath his feet and he didnât know how to steady himself.
âGod, hereââ you reached out, grabbing his hand, your fingers firm but gentle. âJust hold my hand.âÂ
You dragged him into his room, to get privacy if someone entered the floor. He collapsed against the door as soon as it shut, sliding down it to sit on the floor. You crouched in front of him, now holding both of his hands to stop their shaking and to centre his focus.Â
âMimic my breathing, look at my chest,â you instructed, guiding him as you took deep and steady breaths, making sure that he could see the tempo in which they rose and fell.Â
Logan couldnât get any words out, but he tried his best to calm down. He was slowly able to sync his breathing with yours, the tightness in his chest and the pounding in his head easing as he got enough oxygen in his system again. The feeling inside was still foreign to him, like it wasnât palpable at all.Â
He realised he was crying when he felt a cold tear slide down his cheek. He wasnât sure when was the last time he had cried in front of someone, but he was past the point of embarrassment.Â
You didnât seem to care about it anyway. You had a kindness in your eyes that was unexplainable to him, and he wondered how you knew how to deal with this so well.Â
âSee?â you whispered after a moment. âYouâre okay. Just keep breathing with me.â
Logan closed his eyes for a second, feeling his wet eyelashes hit his cheeks. Your voice grounded him and he couldnât think of anything else in the moment. He couldnât think of racing. He couldnât think of Alex.Â
He thought of your unwavering grip on both his hands, sending a calm feeling through his body. He thought of the sound of your steady breathing, making it easy for him to follow.Â
He slowly opened his eyes to look down at your intertwined fingers, your thumb rubbing soothing circles on the back of his hand. Logan had seen that you had tattoos before, but now was the first time he was close enough to distinguish them.
Like patchwork, they lined both of your arms, getting cut off by the hem of your Williams t-shirt right before your shoulder. They looked like doodles. There was a disco ball, and flowers, and a stamp from your home country. As his eyes trailed further, he could see a few on your legs as well, revealed because you were wearing shorts. You had a tattooed band-aid on your knee and a ghost on skateboard on your lower thigh. He assumed they had a connection.Â
âI like your tattoos,â Logan heard himself say, voice thick from the tears.
You glanced at him, a smile tugging at the corners of your lips. The tenseness of your body softened, relieved that he seemed to be coming back to himself. âYou do? You donât seem like the type.âÂ
Logan shook his head, wiping his face with the back of his hand. âOh, Iâm notâbut I like them on you.â
He grabbed your hand again afterwards, unsure of why but relieved that you just continued rubbing absentminded circles. You flexed your arm slightly, turning it so that Logan could get a better look of the inked designs.Â
âWhat are the paw prints for?â he asked, genuinely curious now that his mind had space for other thoughts. You had four little black paw prints on the inside of your arm.Â
âMy parents dog,â you said, warmth filling your voice. âA golden retriever named Tater Tot.â
He chuckled, a sound that felt foreign after the weight of his emotions. âThey have tater tots outside of America?â
âBarely,â you replied. âWhich is a shame because I love them. We went to Florida on vacation when I was a kid, and I think I ate about a thousand tater tots from the hotel buffet.â
âFlorida?â Logan dared to look at your face fully now, intrigued. âIâm from Florida.
âI know, Logan.âÂ
You laughed gently. His Americanness didnât go unnoticed by anyone in a place like this, where most of the team members were European. It was also one of the few things that had stuck with you from Angieâs rambling about her jobâthat she had to work with an actual Florida man, like they were mythological creatures.Â
âWe went to Orlando. Disney World and all that, yâknow?â Â
âYeah, the classic American pilgrimage,â he smiled, then hesitated. âHave you been back? To America, I mean.â
You shrugged, your expression shifting to something more neutral, as if you were weighing the pros and cons in your mind. âNo, itâs not really⌠something I want to do? With war criminals as presidents, and guns at grocery storesâoh, and no butter on your sandwiches?â You shook your head dramatically. âThatâs my personal hell.â
Logan laughed again, feeling a slight stinging pain in his chest that he decided to disregard. If he kept on breathing deeper, he knew that it would go away on its own.Â
You watched as he winced, even if he tried to hide it from you. You took a moment to breathe with him again before continuing. âI have a friend who moved to San Francisco, though. She lives with this skateboarding collective and uh, it seems really nice.â
That was maybe the only reason you would go to the US, for more than the American grands prix of course. It was an old university friend who skated competitively. Even if you werenât on the same level, you still felt like a month or two on the west coast could do your head and mental health a favour.Â
âThat might be a bucket list thing for me,â you explained, at which Logan smiled.Â
You observed his face, glossy blue eyes from tears and messy blond hair from the chaos he had just experienced. A certain hopelessness lingering in the air that you tried to not think about too much. It was still too early to tell how the season would end.Â
âI feel a lot calmer now, uh⌠so thank you for all that,â he said, showing gratitude. He didnât know how youâd known exactly what to say, but you had pulled him back from the edge, and that mattered more than anything.
âYeah, distraction tends to work quite well,â you replied, giving him a knowing look. âYou should maybe talk to someone if this becomes a reoccurring thing.âÂ
His smile faded, but he nodded. Logan didnât know now what this could lead to, but maybe he needed to prepare himself for feeling like this. He kind of wanted to talk to you about it, making a mental reminder to ask if panic attacks were common for you.Â
âWe should probably get back to the paddock,â he murmured as realisation hit him.Â
He would have to face a lot of questions, and he was destined to put on a brave face, showing that this wasnât something that had bothered him.Â
âOnly if you feel like it. I donât care if we get in trouble,â you said, reassuring him.Â
He shook his head, dropping the hold he had of your hands as he stood up and smoothed out his shorts.Â
âIâll be alright, I think.âÂ
. . .
Miami, USA
. . .
It became a thing for you to calm Logan down.Â
You'd said it yourself: It was too early to tell how the season would play out. But race after race, you grew more certainâthis Williams car might just be the worst on the grid. And while you knew close to nothing about the engineering and mechanical side of things, you realised that neither did most of the audience. That was why people started to blame the drivers instead.Â
It didnât really get to youâuntil Miami. That was when you felt anger over racing for the first time in your life, but absolutely not the last.Â
The Miami sun had been relentless, casting a hot haze over the track and the bustling energy of the crowd. The faint smell of burnt rubber lingered in the air as you clutched your camera, squinting through the lens, trying to spot the cars as they zoomed by in a blur of colour and speed. The piercing sound of engines roaring filled your ears, but it was a sudden crash that made your heart drop.
You hadnât been too far away from the exact barrier when the crash happened. And when you realised that it was Logan, getting pushed off the track by Magnussen for a measly 18th position, you felt rage inside. He didnât even get to finish his home race because of someone elseâs carelessness.Â
By the time you made your way to the garage, the race had ended. The sound of people cheering for Landoâs first win was still deafening. Logan was checked by the medics but had been released soon after. When you found him, he was sitting in his driverâs room, still in his racing suit with his helmet beside him, his face flushed red and tense. His eyes met yours through the open door and you hesitated going to talk to him at first, but with a slight nod, he showed that it was okay.Â
âSooo⌠Magnussen is a cunt,â you blurted out, leaning in the doorway, the words escaping before you had a chance to filter them.
Logan couldnât help but huff out a laugh in frustration. It was an empty laugh, the kind that didnât quite reach up to sparkle his eyes with any genuine effect of your humorous words. Instead, the only thing adding light to his eyes were the tears threatening to fall. Youâd seen it before.Â
You felt heat rise to your cheeks as you realised what you had said. âIâm sorry, I donât actually know him, that was really harsh.âÂ
âWell, Iâm glad you said it because Iâm not allowed to,â he muttered in response, looking down at his hands, pulling at loose skin from his cuticles.Â
He sighed loudly, leaning to rest his head on the wall behind him. You moved his helmet to sit beside him, knowing now that you werenât pushing any boundaries. You wouldnât exactly call yourselves friendsâyou didnât really know anything about each otherâbut having travelled and worked so closely together for two months now, you were starting to learn how his post-race emotions functioned.Â
âI think I might be the living embodiment of it could be worse,â Logan stated. Â
âYeah, you could be in that series where they race electric scooters,â you joked.Â
The corners of his mouth turned upward for a split second, then he thought about how the people racing scooters probably were having more fun than him this season.Â
A silence settled between you, but it wasnât uncomfortable. You watched him for a moment, noticing the tension still visible in the tight set of his jaw. The weight of the season was bearing down on himâthe constant pressure, the unfair expectations.
âYou donât have to stay,â he said softly, eyes downcast.
âI want to,â you replied without hesitation.Â
He looked up at you, fully taking in your appearance. Miami made everyone hot and bothered, and not in the good way. A sheen of sweat coated your forehead, and your skin had gotten more golden from being under the sun. Just as he spotted a fresh scratch on your elbow that he assumed was from skating, he also acknowledged the shirt you were wearing.Â
It wasnât the Williamâs kit. It had his face on it, with the American flag and a bald eagle behind him. Perfectly oversized in your street-style-skater way. The text on it said wtf is a kilometer.
He snorted out loud, getting your attention. âI like your shirt.âÂ
âItâs cool, right?â you replied, tugging at the hem. âA little girl from the fan zone gave me this friendship bracelet too.âÂ
You reached out your wrist for him to see, baby blue beads rattling together. He carefully moved his fingers to twist it, showing him how white alphabet beads spelled out his surname, right there on your wrist. You were fully decked out to support him today⌠and he hadnât even managed to finish the race.Â
As his hands moved, you saw how they were practically shaking, something his nerves caused him to do. It was an uncontrollable response to the adrenaline and pent-up frustration.Â
âYouâre not alright, are you?â you asked gently.
He didnât answer at first. Instead, he stared ahead, eyes glassy. Then, after a moment, he let out a shaky breath. âCan you say something to distract me? Tell me something about you that I donât know.âÂ
You realised why he asked that. Like with the tattoos in Melbourne, distraction had worked on his anxiety before. You didnât know if he had experienced more panic attacks or if he had tried to talk to someone about what had happened, but if you could help even a little bit by just yapping, you would do it whenever he asked.Â
You thought for a second, thinking of something light-hearted to tell him. An idea popped into your head as you pulled out your phone from your pocket. âOh, I started this instagram diary thing to get some use out of all the photos and videos I take. That should tell you everything about me.âÂ
The screen showed a grid of colourful photos, and Logan immediately scooted closer to get a better look. They were themed and edited to match together with long captions to actually mimic a diary. Your account was relatively small, mostly followed by old friends and members of the Williams team.Â
You didnât really have anything to hide, so you handed him the phone to let him scroll freely. There were weekly posts, one from every country you had visited thus far and also ones from when you were back in England. Heâd learnt by now that you werenât English, but lived with Angie and her fiancĂŠ Matthew during this season, only because employees needed to be based in the UK.Â
âYou really get out there and explore every time weâre in a new city?â he asked, slightly amazed after stopping at the post from Australia. It was a photo dump with everything from the beach, to a skatepark, to you enjoying the nightlife.Â
âYeah, but my schedule is not as busy as yours,â you replied, your lips curving into a small smile. âYou should join sometime, maybe not to a skatepark, but for dinner or karaoke.âÂ
âYou got to do karaoke in Japan?â Logan wondered, scrolling back up to see the post you had made from there.Â
Cherry blossoms, sushi, a skate shop with custom decks. Logan had seen that you had gotten a new board with The Great Wave off Kanawaga on it to match your blue Williams clothes, but he didnât know from where. The last picture of the post was from a bar lit in neon lights, something written with Japanese characters. He assumed that was where the karaoke had taken place.Â
âYeah,â you grinned, thinking back to the night. âAngie does a mean Michael Jackson impression.âÂ
Logan had a hard time envisioning Angie singing in front of people. She was in her early thirties, and while she was lovely, she was also kind of stiff. Maybe it helped being on the other side of the world.Â
He shook his head, an amused scoff escaping him, but then his eyes drifted to an older post, further down your feed. It was multiple posts actually, all aligning together in an explosion of colours. It was collages of pictures, that, when zoomed out, depicted a picture in and of itself. They were all of a girl with bright pink hair.Â
âWhatâs all that?â he asked, tilting the phone for you to see better.Â
âItâs a project I did for university, like a mixed media thing where we had to turn photos into an art piece of a different kind,â you explained.Â
You said it simply, but Logan was beyond impressed at how much time and precision it mustâve taken. First to take and develop what seemed like a million photographs of the same person, and then to make a collage out of them, basically using the pictures as building blocks to make a much larger version of said person.Â
âDid you go to art school?âÂ
âOh no,â you laughed softly. âI did political science with a minor in photography. My entire family is made up of lawyers, so that was always my plan A.â Â
He looked at you curiously. âSo why arenât you in law school now?âÂ
âBecause I got rejected by every single one I applied to,â you dead-panned, tinged with a kind of self-deprecating humor. âIâm not that smart, Logan. Angie practically saved my life by letting me join her.âÂ
There was a brief pause, a moment of vulnerability hanging in the air.Â
It was ridiculous really, how it all had happenedâhow you had been shaped your entire life for one future and then achieving nothing of it.Â
You were the youngest of three siblings. Your brother was fifteen and your sister was ten when you were born. It was obvious to everyone except your parents that you were an accidental pregnancy.Â
Being that much younger, you always felt behind because you were never on the same intellectual level as the rest of your family. Then, when you finally caught up in age and was supposed to be seen as an adult, you still couldnât succeed in the things your siblings had succeeded in. You never got into a nice university, and while you just narrowly managed to graduate, it would have never been enough to get into law school no matter how hard you tried.Â
School was never your thing. You found joy in art and sports, but you never had the concentration to sit down with your nose in a book to learn things. It took your parents a long time to realise this, because your siblings had never had any problems. Your brother was the youngest chairman ever at your fatherâs law firm, and your sister worked for the World Court in The Hague.Â
You never stood a chance, but no one saw that.Â
Angie was your sisterâs childhood friend, and when she found out about your failed attempt at law school, she was the one to arrange this job for you. She knew that it was never your dream to do as the rest of your family. Your parents still didnât see that.Â
Everyone said that all they wanted for their children was for them to be happy and healthy, but that wasnât really what they wanted. They wanted them to be like themselves, or even betterâthey wanted them to be better than themselves. And when the first two children actually managed to be better, who wouldnât be a little disappointed in the third one?Â
Loganâs voice brought you out of your spiralling thoughts. You watched as his eyes softened, and he said with pure honesty, âI think what youâre doing now is way cooler.âÂ
âYeah, but my parents, and grandparents, and siblings do not,â you shrugged, the compliment washing over you but not quite sinking in.
âWhat would you have been doing if their opinion didnât matter to you?â he asked, his voice suddenly louder.Â
You contemplated for a moment, startled by his question and change of mood.Â
âI would have skated a lot more, maybe even competitively. Or started with sports photography earlier. Not done political science, thatâs for sure,â you said. âWhat about you?âÂ
âI think Iâm already supposed to be living my dream,â he answered, but his voice lacked conviction. âI shouldnât feel this⌠sad, I should be enjoying what I have right now because Sainz is taking my seat next year.âÂ
âCarlos? Jesus, thatâs the downgrade of the century,â you blurted out without thinking, and Loganâs head snapped towards you, surprise in his eyes. Â
âWhat? Do we think the Williams car will magically compete with Ferrari next season?â you chuckled. âNo, it will be hilarious to hear him complain over the radio.âÂ
You hadnât given him the time to answer, but he wouldâve said something similar to what you did. He was reluctant to laugh, but he knew it was true.Â
As he let the laugh out, he was immediately stuck by how freely he did it. Heâd felt the same kind of weight over his chest like he had in Melbourne earlier. With the medics, and with the engineers, and with James. He didnât feel that now, he could laugh without thinking of it. Without thinking of how his future was still very much undecided. Youâd done it againâdistracted him out of total anxious paralysis.Â
âDo you know what youâre gonna do?â you asked.Â
âIâve got absolutely nothing figured out,â he admitted.
âThen I think we should use Landoâs win as an excuse to get absolutely wasted.âÂ
. . .
MontrĂŠal, Canada
. . .
Canada was cold, like actually freezing. And it wouldnât stop raining. You tried to do your job the best you could, but when your shoes were soaked through and raindrops had started to trickle down the inside of your coat, getting good photos was impossible. So, you had to give up with capturing the track and the crowd and opted on finding something content-worthy in the garage instead.Â
Logan found you on the floor of the garage, sat on your skateboard, using it to slide across to capture the car in some sort of panoramic view he assumed. He didnât say much, leaving you to work in peace as he went on to focus on his own things. He could spot you in his periphery every now and then. You still wore your red bucket hat because of the rain, and your worn-out Nikes squeaked against the slick flooring.Â
He heard Alex enter his side of the garage with a ringing laughter, patting his shoulder as a way of greeting him.Â
âMight I ask why Paddy is on the floor?â he asked, voice laced with amusement at the girl in front of them, basically folded in half to get the perfect photograph.Â
You looked up at Alex from your position, the camera still held up like a shield between you. The flash went off as you sneakily took a picture of the two drivers. âAngles, baby. Angles,â you grinned.Â
Alex tilted his head, crossing his arms over his chest. âWhat angle is that exactly? My double chin?âÂ
âDonât worry, you look great,â you reassured, standing up again.Â
Logan could see how your eyes searched for something, and when he spotted your lens cap laying on a nearby table, he reached out to give it to you. You nodded slightly as a silent thank you, surprised at how observant heâd been.
He wouldâve never admitted it at the time, but how easy the word baby left your lips definitely lingered on his mind. It didnât exactly help that it was Alex youâd said it too, even if it was in a jokingly manner.Â
You continued working, changing cameras from digital to film, capturing the team as they prepared for the race to start. You only stopped to go outside to photograph when a hailstorm hit the paddock.Â
Logan saw you enter the hospitality, drenched from head to toe, your blue coat having turned navy from the rain. Your eyes watched the hail in miraculous awe. He spotted you shivering from the weather, your hands having a hard time holding the camera as the cold gnawed at your fingers.Â
You felt him before you saw him, his quiet energy sneaking up on you, standing behind you as hail and raindrops hit the glass panes of the Williams hospitality building.Â
âHere,â he said, holding out a steaming mug.
You blinked, momentarily confused by the gesture. âI donât drink coffee,â you reminded him. âEveryone says Iâm hyper enough without caffeine.âÂ
Loganâs lips curled into a small, knowing smile. âI know that,â he replied. âItâs mine, but you can use the mug to warm your hands.âÂ
âOhâŚâ Your voice trailed off as you reached for the mug, the warmth radiating from the ceramic a stark contrast to the cold that had settled in your bones. Your fingers touched his as you grabbed it, almost feeling igniting a hotter fire than the boiling hot coffee warming you. âThank you.â
Logan watched you in that silent way of his, the hailstorm outside temporarily forgotten as the world seemed to shrink down to just the two of you.
You glanced up at him, your heart doing a ridiculous fluttering thing it had started doing whenever he was close. His gaze was steady, searching yours with a familiar, unspoken understanding that had developed over months of working together. A soft chuckle escaped your lips, the sound surprising even you, thinking back on how he had handed you your lens cap earlier. And now this, too.Â
âWhy do you always seem to know what I need before I do?â
âI could ask you the same thing,â he said, voice low enough for you to just about hear him.Â
It took you a while to understand what he meant. Then it hit you, that your comfortâyour distractionâwas what he needed. And you did it without him asking. Ever since tears had fallen from his blue eyes on that hotel room floor somewhere in Melbourne.Â
. . .
Later, the race began and came to an end.Â
The rain had stopped and the streets had dried up, leaving an eerily quiet race tack left under glimmering city lights. As you skated the paddock, weaving through the lingering crowd, the adrenaline of the race still pulsed through you, but it was dulled by the quiet aftermath.
You hadnât really had any time to talk with anyone, being out by the track all race. While the race was disappointing, the cars had at least been a pleasure to photograph as they sprayed water around them.Â
You spotted a group of team members ahead, their heads low, conversations muted. Among them, Loganâs familiar figure stood out. You pushed off your skateboard with a quiet flick, coasting toward him. His ears perked up at the sound of the wheels against the concrete. As you got closer, you set your foot down, slowing to match his pace.
âSoo⌠uhm,â you started, voice unsure. Â
âYeah, we donât have to talk about it,â he said quickly, his gaze locked on the asphalt in front of him as he continued to walk slowly, you riding beside him.Â
You both knew what it meant. A double DNF, a race weekend that spiralled out of control, and hours of work undone in seconds.
âWe can, if you want to,â you offered.Â
You glanced at him then, really looking at him for the first time since before the race. He looked tired, but more than thatâdefeated. And yet, he was trying to be strong. You offered him a chance to vent, even though you both knew it wouldnât necessarily help. Not when you couldnât pinpoint a defining factor as to why the weekend had gone to shit. It wasnât his fault. It wasnât Alexâs fault. It was just a mess to race in this much rain.Â
Logan let out a deep breath, rubbing the back of his neck. âIâm not sure anyone on the team would want to talk about today,â he admitted.Â
You could only nod, completely understanding that it was probably best to be quiet about the race. You were better off distracting him, like you usually did.Â
âYou wanna have dinner? A little pick-me-up? Maybe Alex and Lily will want to join.âÂ
Logan huffed a dry laugh. âTheyâre having what Alex calls DNF therapy.âÂ
âDo I wanna know what that means?â you questioned, acting intrigued.Â
You didnât need to ask. You understood what it meant. But you asked anyway, to see if Logan would explain it to you.Â
âNo, you donât,â he replied short, shaking his head.Â
âHow about room service and a shitty movie instead?â you suggested.Â
âYouâre starting to know me so well,â he said. He then paused, the realisation settling in as he glanced sideways at you. âI guess youâre my DNF therapy, huh.â
You tried to stop yourself from making the conversation take a turn. You really did. But the joke was there, right in front of your eyes, looking so damn tempting.Â
âIâm not having sex with you, Sargeant,â you said sternly.Â
Logan blinked, his eyes wide for a second before he burst out laughing. He raised his hands in mock surrender. âNoted. Loud and clear.â
For a brief moment, a tension so thick formed between you that you could almost feel it taking up space in the cold, still slightly rainy air. It was quickly replaced by the laughterâthe easy banter you usually had with Logan.Â
But the thought lingered in your mind longer than it should have. In reality, you probably wouldâve done it. If he asked you, that is. Sex with Logan, huh. The heat that rose to your cheeks was almost painful. Your infatuation had been visible, right there on your face, if only Logan had been confident enough to see it.Â
You had to push these thoughts away. You didnât need things to be complicated between the two of you. Even if this stupid crush you had on him was starting to become harder to ignore. Â
Instead, you nudged his arm playfully before pushing with your foot to skate in front of him, glancing back over your shoulder with a grin. âCome on. Letâs go order some overpriced food and find the worst movie possible.â
. . .
Baku, Azerbaijan
. . .
Azerbaijan was hot, like actually blazing. You could feel sweat running down your face and back every time you were out of the air-conditioned garage to photograph. By the time race day came around, you already had blisters on the inside of your thighs from chafing, and your skin was warm to the touch from being burnt. Â
The moment you had now, on the Sunday morning, to sit inside and edit some photos was therefore sacred. It was the first calm and, more importantly, cool moment youâd had in days. The torment the heat had on your body had still left its mark. You couldnât get comfortable. You couldnât get your heart to stop racing. You wouldnât have called it anxiety, but since this morning, you were now sure that heat exhaustion wasnât the only thing you were feeling.Â
Your mind was enough of a twisty place. Now, when it wouldnât shut the fuck up, it was like a constant stream of emotions just overwhelming you.Â
At least, the photos you had taken during practice and qualifying turned out sick. Youâd tried out a new long exposure technique that really captured the speed even in static form. And you had definitely gotten better at candid portrait photography, which was a huge part of your job. Editing was usually the simplest part for you, but when the photos were so close that you could count the subjectâs individual eyelashes, it was easy to get flustered.Â
You finished the editing and decided on asking both Alex and Logan for their favourites before sending the content to the media team. It wasnât something that was required from you, but you also knew that having your photo taken could be difficult.Â
With your laptop in your hand, you walked to their driver rooms, rounding the corner to be met with a wide open door into Loganâs.Â
âLogan, Iââ you started, your breath catching in your throat at the sight in front of you.Â
There he was, in workout shorts but no shirt, lounging in his room before changing into his race gear. He didnât even have time to look up from his phone before you were rambling out an apology, ready to run out of the roomâhell, maybe even the garage.Â
âOh fuck, shit, Iâm sorry,â you hurried to say, feeling your pulse quicken. You hoped he didnât notice how your mouth hung open or the way your eyes darted everywhere but his torso.Â
âWhatâs up?â he said, straightening his back and running a hand through his hair.
His casual confidence made everything about your reaction feel even worse. He didnât mind you seeing him shirtless, so why the fuck did you have to care so much?Â
âI justâŚâ you stammered, losing all sense of vocabulary as your eyes deceived you, glancing at his chest. âForgot how to English.âÂ
Logan let out a gentle laugh, and you mentally told yourself to get your shit together.Â
âI have some photos for you to look at,â you said, holding up your laptop that had been your reason to barge into his room in the first place.
âRight, right,â Logan nodded. âLet me put a shirt on first.â
Your mouth moved before your brain could stop it. The moment the words left your mouth, you wanted to crawl into a hole and disappear.Â
âNo, I get it. Iâd be shirtless too if it was socially acceptable.âÂ
He froze mid-step, his head slowly turning back to you with a raised brow.
Youâd said no. In milliseconds. Like you were opposed to him putting a shirt on. Like that was a totally normal thing. Then, you just had to mention yourself being shirtless. So, you were forced to wonder if he was thinking about you without a shirt on as much as you were thinking about him without one.Â
Well⌠you didnât necessarily have to think. He was already standing in front of you shirtless. That was a known fact.
The moment you thought he might actually flirt back with you, it was like you could see how the tension washed away from his face.Â
âItâs hot, right?â he asked, moving some things out of the way so that you could place your laptop on the table in his room. A part of you thought he wasnât actually talking about the temperature.Â
âWay too fucking hot,â you mumbled as your fingers shakily hovered over the mousepad. Your heart was racing and your body was overheating. You didnât dare look up from the screen, afraid of what you might see in his eyesâor worse, what he might see in yours.
He overviewed the photos, pointing out some of his favourites. Youâd gathered quite quickly that Logan had an amateur interest in photography. He didnât shy away from complimenting your work or from asking questions about certain shots he found special. That didnât make the rushing heat flowing to your face any better.Â
âYou alright?â you heard him ask as you closed the laptop shut, your photo viewing session done for now. You couldnât really focus, a ringing sound hitting your ears.Â
You swallowed hard, nodding. âYeah, just a lot to do. Iâll see you after the race.âÂ
With that, you dashed out of his room, on your way to find Alex instead. You couldnât keep doing this to yourself, but that didnât exactly matter. Either way, you were in too deep, and you knew it.
. . .
The Williams car was decent in Bakuâfast on the straights, as expected. Alex got points and Logan wasnât far from archiving it too. Still, it wasnât enough. It wasnât the most depressing resultâhe would manage this weekend without once collapsing like an anxious mess. That was a win in his book nowadays.Â
Logan walked with Alex from the media pen, adrenaline in his steps, talking freely about whatever came to mind.Â
âDid she show you the photos she took during practice yesterday? She used some kind of long exposure. I donât know what itâs called or how she did it but it looked so coolââÂ
âLogan,â Alex stopped him.Â
âWhat?âÂ
âTake a breath, youâve been talking about Paddy for like five whole minutes,â Alex teased, a grin tugging at the corners of his lips. âI get that you like her photography, but this is borderline obsessive.â
âIâm not obsessed,â Logan defended. âYou were the one who brought her up in the first place anyway.âÂ
âMate, all I did was ask if youâd seen her. She didnât take any photos as we exited the cars,â Alex explained.Â
Logan shrugged. âI havenât seen her since before the race.âÂ
âMe neither, thatâs why I asked.âÂ
Realisation dawned upon Logan that something wasnât alright. Youâd seemed sort of unbalanced earlier in the day, but he assumed that was the heat and a massive workload. It wasnât something he hadnât seen before, and you seemed to quietly get through every hurdle in your way anyway. He would be blind if he didnât see your embarrassment to barging in on him shirtless, but he had explained that reaction away too in his head. He mostly found you cute, but that didnât have to mean anything.Â
He couldnât find an explanation for this, though. Even after shit races, he looked forward to seeing you with your camera held high every time he exited the car, got weighed, or was walking to the media pen. But you hadnât been there todayâŚÂ
His emotional support photographer hadnât been there. Sure, todayâs race wasnât that bad, and he didnât necessarily need you as a distraction for his anxiety. But you didnât know that. That had to mean that something had happened to you.Â
âAngie, whereâs Paddy?â Alex asked as they entered back into the Williams garage, practically running into the obviously stressed-out marketing manager.Â
âUhhâŚâ Angie hesitated, not lifting her eyes from her phone. âStill with the medical team, I think. She passed out during the race. Heatstroke, most likely.âÂ
Logan froze. He didnât understand why he cared so much, but for some reason he did. He cared about you, and he cared so much that he was about to act irrationally.Â
âShe passed out? How are you so calm?â he questioned.Â
Angie shrugged, far too nonchalantly for his liking. âItâs a million degrees outside, heatstrokes are bound to happenââ
Logan didnât wait for another word. He was already moving, cutting through the garage with purpose.
Alex shouted after him, âLogan, where are you going? We have debrief soon!âÂ
âTell them Iâm not coming!â was all that he yelled as a reply.Â
. . .
The air in the small, sterile room seemed to hum with the tension that had followed you since you woke up.
âMiss, how are you feeling?âÂ
You blinked, still trying to find your bearings. It took you a second to even see the medic that was talking to you. The heat clouded your vision like a mirage. Your mouth was dry, your skin sticky from sweat, but at least you were conscious. Theyâd placed you in a secluded room in the makeshift medical area, lying on a stiff and temporary cot.Â
âItâs a lot better now,â you replied hoarsely, managing a weak smile. âStill have a slight headache, but I guess thatâs normal.âÂ
You didnât know if it was the bright fluorescent lighting or the heat still affecting you, but your eyes burned and your head pounded. You felt the instinct to rub your temples, but was hindered when you felt an IV-needle inserted in your arm.Â
You didnât know how long youâd been out. You werenât even sure what had happened really. One second you were in the garage, trying to get a perfect shot of Alex making his pit stop. The next one, you have a vague memory of being moved into the medical area and multiple peopleâs voices buzzing above you.Â
âYes, it is. Do you know what happened?â the medic asked. His voice was kind as he stood by your bedside, an iPad in hand with information.Â
âUh, I⌠passed out? Did I hit my head?â
âNo, no, you didnât. You should be lucky that garage was filled with people to catch a falling lady,â he joked lightly.Â
You smiled, albeit a bit forced. You looked at the medicâs name tag, trying to make out the letters with your clouded vision. Amir. That was a pretty name. At least your brain was working somewhat.
âWe just want to observe you for a little longer to make sure youâre no longer dehydrated, otherwise you should be completely fine. Are you on any medication now?â Amir continued by saying.Â
You thought for a second. âYeah, wait⌠I can never remember the names.âÂ
Looking around you, you were thankful to see your camera bag with your phone inside placed neatly on a table next to the cot. You moved carefully to reach it, opening your notes app to show Amir the prescriptions you had written down.Â
âI take those daily for ADHD, and uh⌠those for anxiety when I feel like I need it,â you explained, pointing at the screen even though it hurt your head to look at it.Â
Amir nodded and tapped something down on his iPad. âDid you take one today?âÂ
âYeah, one of each.âÂ
âGood to know. Iâll go get you something for that headache,â he reassured you before leaving, letting his hand gently squeeze your arm as an act of thoughtfulness.Â
You closed your tired eyes for a moment, a feverish cold sweat catching up to you, making you realise just how uncomfortable your Williams kit was, practically glueing your warm body to the cot.Â
The door clicked shut softly behind the medic as he left, but it wasnât long before you heard it creak open again. You looked up, expecting Amir, but instead, it was⌠Logan.
You blinked, a little confused. His blond hair was slightly damp, still sporting what was obviously helmet-hair. He looked tired, maybe as exhausted as you felt, yet he stood there, hesitant for only a moment before stepping inside.Â
He shouldn't be here. He should be debriefing with the team, or doing interviews, orâ
âWhat the hell did you do?â Logan asked, only half-teasing as real concern bled through in his voice.Â
âApparently I passed out,â you answered, trying to downplay it with a weak smile.
Logan sighed, the tension visibly draining from his body as if seeing you alright, even in this condition, was enough to ease the worry that had been weighing on him. You were sure you looked like a complete messâsweaty, shivering, barely able to keep your eyes open.
He moved inside the room, sitting down on a stool next to your cot. You turned to look at him, feeling his intense eyes on you already. You didnât know what to do, or what to feel. Your system was already cooked, fried up completely from feeling bad all day to passing out in front of a crowded garage. Â
âSo, uhm⌠youâre just as anxious as I am?â he asked nervously, tilting his head.Â
Your stomach twisted. It didnât take you long to realise that he had overheard your conversation with Amirâabout the medication, about your diagnoses. It wasnât a secret in any way, you just hadnât planned to tell him about it unless he asked. Your magical cure to dealing with his anxiety was⌠two decades of dealing with your own.Â
âNot that itâs a competition, but Iâm way worse,â you joked.Â
Not fitting in at school, not fitting in at homeâit would make anyone anxious out of their skin. And younger you were surrounded by people who didnât know how to deal with itâto deal with you. Your family labelled you as a sad child, or god forbid sensitive, and sort of just accepted your anxious responses to every minor thing. Doctors and therapists called you emotionally intelligent, but you never found that to be a compliment, like it was a positive thing to be so aware of your own problems.Â
Logan stared at you plainly. âDo the meds help?âÂ
You scoffed. âYeah, they do. Just not against heat exhaustion.âÂ
You saw how Loganâs expression stayed the same, slightly emotionless, slightly annoyed at how you just couldnât help yourself from joking about the situation. Youâd experienced it beforeâhow people disliked you for it.Â
âYou donât have to be here, Logan. Iâm fine,â you added, shying away from looking at him.Â
That broke his demeanor. He was quick to grab your hand, careful with the IV-port connected to your inner elbow. His grip was firm but tender, grounding you in a way you hadnât expected.
âI want to be here,â he shortly replied. There was no room for debate.Â
You wanted to protest, to tell him that he didnât need to babysit you, that he had more important things to do. But the truth was⌠you werenât fine. Not really.
You were used to keeping to yourself, even in busy places like the paddock. You were used to the chaos and noise of your family, where attention was either forced or withheld, never calmly showed. Silence was your refuge. You were talkative, sure, but you had learnt early on that asking for help meant admitting weaknessâsomething that wasnât welcome in the household you grew up in. As a kid, you would shut down when you felt this overwhelmed. Even now, sat in a medical room after collapsing for heat exhaustion, that old instinct was there, tugging at you to shut down.Â
Logan, however, was still there, unfazed, waiting. Â
Maybe he wanted to tell you how it was slightly reckless to feel this bad and not inform anyone, but he also understood more than anybodyâthat admitting a weakness while doing a job people questioned your talent forâwasnât something easily done, or something that would even help your cause in the end.Â
But he didnât say anything. He just held your hand, breathing steadily. His fingertips traced upward to one of the floral tattoos you had on your forearm. His touch felt⌠gentle. Intimate, even, your clouded mind envisioned. It sent a shiver through youânot from the feverish cold sweat, but from something else entirely.
âHow did the race go?â you asked, swallowing down emotions, more to change the subject than anything.
âNot important.â Logan shook his head. âWhat? I mean it. Iâm focused on you now.âÂ
You tried to roll your eyes, but the effort was too much. You could feel yourself unravelling, the exhaustion too heavy to ignore anymore. He noticed it too.
âMy father called me this morning,â you blurted out after a moment of silence, surprising even yourself. âI think thatâs why I was feeling so off today.âÂ
Logan, again, didnât say anything, just waited, his gaze steady, patient. He wasnât rushing you, wasnât pushing you to say more. He was just⌠there. Heâd learnt from you, you slowly realisedâto let anxious people talk when they wanted to talk and to distract them when talking would only make things worse.Â
âWe havenât talked in months,â you admitted, biting your lip. âSo, I thought⌠I thought he was finally going to be the bigger person and actually show some interest in my life and the job Iâm doing.âÂ
Logan nodded slowly, sensing the conclusion before you even voiced it. âIâm guessing he didnât?âÂ
âHe called to offer me a job at his firm because one of their legal assistants is going on maternity leave.â You let out a bitter laugh, the sound hollow. âIâve been working and travelling the world for half a year, making a name for myself, and he still doesnât believe that I can do it.âÂ
It was funny, how the first man to ever break your heart was your own father. And he hadnât done it with malicious intent, but because he was just too blind to get to know his own daughter.
Your breath hitched, and before you could stop them, the tears spilled over, silent but insistent. You wiped your face with the back of your hand, embarrassed by the vulnerability, the rawness. âIâm sorry, I donât know why Iâm crying.âÂ
âDonât apologise. Youâve seen me cry enough times to know that itâs okay.â
Loganâs grip on your hand tightened just a fraction, a quiet reassurance. You didnât have to suck up the tears and build up a façade to prove that you were unbothered.
âHe doesnât need to believe in you for you to succeed,â Logan said quietly, his words like an anchor to your focus. âYou can do it, actually, you are doing it.âÂ
And the first time in your life, you allowed yourself to believe that maybe, just maybe, he was right.
. . .
Austin, USA
. . .
Austin was⌠disappointing.Â
That was the word of this season. Disappointing. Because no matter how hard it looked like Alex and Logan were pushing themselves and the carsâthey got nothing out of it. Now, Logan knew for certain that he wasnât coming back to Formula One next season. As much as Logan had wanted to go out on a high note, to leave with his head held high, reality didnât allow it.
The only moments that really brought him any sort of joy nowadays were the ones off track. Especially the ones with you. He didnât like to overthink it because it was complicated, and God knows he wasnât in the right state of mind for anything complicated. But calling it platonic? That would be a lie. It wasnât necessarily love either, just a deep understanding of each other.Â
Like now, on the Sunday evening after the disappointing race, when you and him spent time in his hotel room, watching a movie that was so bad and eating room service food that was so tasteless. You were there, for him, as a distraction, as a constant. You laughed at the ridiculousness of the plot, made sarcastic comments about the actors, and occasionally hummed along to the cheesy soundtrack. You showed him attention and affection when he quite literally felt like the worst person in the world.Â
âI should probably go to my own room,â you said, trying to hide a yawn as you spoke. The food finished a long time ago and the end credits rolling on the TV-screen at the end of the bed. Â
Logan looked at you over his shoulder from his position on the bed, the one heâd been sinking into from exhaustion since youâd both entered his room. He was laid on his side, back turned to you. You were sat against the plush headboard, your hair looked a mess as you leant your head. Heâd been quiet for a long time, barely even laughed during the movieâs funnier parts. But now, he slowly shook his head as he looked at you.Â
He didnât want you to leave.Â
You silently agreed to stay for a little longer by just a look from your eyes. He turned his back to you again and you reached for the remote to turn off the TV. A static and quiet sound of air-conditioning the only thing audible in the hotel room. You shuffled behind him carefully, letting yourself lie down with your front facing his back. You didnât dare to move under the covers like he had, only his blond hair and shirtless shoulders peeking out.Â
âThey shouldâve just sacked me off before the summer break,â he finally muttered. You saw how a breath left his lungs, weighing him further down into the mattress. âOr after the crash at Zandvoort. Yâknow? Just done something to get rid of me so that I didnât have to feel this way.âÂ
He hadnât talked like this in a while. Youâd heard it a lot earlier during the season, when there were talks of him getting replaced after every race he didnât score points. The talking never stopped, but Loganâs attitude definitely changed. He was indifferent to it, and that was scary to seeâsomeone so young, kicked to the ground repeatedly, that his dreams lost their importance even to himself.
Heâd been more careful with you since Baku. You thought maybe that had an influence on him too. He didnât want to crowd you with emotions and anxiety when he now knew that you didnât have it easy either. You didnât think that was fair. You had never once felt like he added on to your anxiety. He only made it better.Â
âYouâre not saying much,â he added quietly, as your silence became too much for him.Â
âFor once in my life, I thought Iâd try out what itâs like to be quiet,â you responded, but there was no bite in your voice. It was gentle, sympatheticânot joking like you used to do. âNo, Iâm sorry. I was letting you vent. It sounded like you needed it.âÂ
Logan's body slumped further as he exhaled, realising that you were right.Â
âLogan, listen,â you said. âIt would make no sense to sack you off. No possible replacement would be able to adjust in time for a better chance at points. Williams is doomed this season no matter what if they canât give both cars equal machinery.âÂ
Your words hung in the air, not offering a solution, but trying to relieve him of some of the guilt he had piled on him.Â
Without thinking, your fingers began tracing a pattern on his back, just by his exposed shoulder blade. Small, mindless circlesâsomething to occupy the space between words. You werenât even aware you were doing it until Logan spoke again.
âAre you doing one of those childrenâs rhymes?â Logan asked with a slight amusement as he recognised the pattern your finger was moving in.
âWho says theyâre just for children?â you joked.Â
âX marks the spot, a circle and a dotâŚâ he started, trailing off with a soft laugh. His voice was muffled by the pillow he was lying on, but you could hear the faint hint of a smile in it.Â
âWaitâŚI donât know the right order in English,â you admitted, a little embarrassed as you lifted your finger from his skin.Â
âDo it in your language,â he suggested in a heartbeat.Â
âBut you wonât understand it?â
âI just like listening to you speak,â Logan said softly, sincerely.Â
âReally? Iâve been told that I sound like a muppet before by English speakers,â you questioned, feeling a flush rise in your cheeks despite yourself.
That wasnât a lie. Muppet. Cartoon character. Or just any national stereotype people could think of. Youâd heard it all.Â
Logan chuckled, the sound vibrating through his chest. âIs that why you try to not have an accent?âÂ
âYeah, I guess so,â you shrugged. âIt was either a borderline offensive British accent or sounding like Iâm one of the Kardashians.âÂ
He felt a short breath fall on his naked shoulder, something between a giggle and a huff. He could imagine the look on your faceâsmiling, trying to not be too loud for the roomâs sombre atmosphere.Â
You did as he asked, tracing the rhyme onto his back in the way you remembered your mother doing it to you as a child when you couldnât sleep. His skin was tan and slightly freckled, feeling smooth under your fingertip. You whispered the words quietly in the language you knew best.Â
âI love how you sound when you donât care,â Logan said after a moment. âAnd in your native language.âÂ
You raised an eyebrow in confusion. Not that he would be able to see your expression anyway. You had no idea that heâd even heard you speak in your native tongue before.
âWhen youâre on the phone with your family and so on,â he continued. âYour tone changes, itâs more melodic.âÂ
Youâd always been self-conscious about your accent, always trying to blend in, to sound like everyone else. Again, it was one of those things that had always made you feel just a little bit inadequate. A little bit less than the older people around you. But here he was, appreciating the very thing you tried to hide. Loving it, even.Â
âThank you,â you whispered, voice barely audible as you let your head fall forward, your forehead resting gently against his shoulder blade.Â
You stayed like that for a moment, tracing his back, savouring the quiet, intimacy of the moment without needing to explain or define it. You couldâve told him that you liked him. Your lips were only centimetres away from kissing the bare skin of his shoulder. You sensed that it was not the best time to try messing with his head and digging up your emotions to the surface, so you squashed them down all over again.Â
Logan fell asleep first, but you werenât long after. Right there, behind him. That was never your plan, but a tired mind did whatever the tired mind wanted to, you supposed. Now that it had happened, you couldnât bring yourself to regret it. It didnât end up being an issue until morning came around.Â
It was earlyâearlier than what it needed to beâwhen the sun broke through the curtains and filled the room with light, evidently waking you. The daily alarm you had set on your phone wouldnât be ringing for another hour or two.Â
You had slept fine. Nothing disrupting you. Nothing waking you. You didnât even dream. When you woke up, however, you thought you might be dreaming.Â
During the night, your positions had changed. Somehow, you werenât behind Logan anymore, with a safe distance. No, he was spooning you. An arm lazily draped over your stomach and his warm breath tickled the skin of your neck every time he exhaled.Â
Nope, you definitely werenât dreaming.
You laid as still as you possibly could, tensing your entire body, gathering that he was fast asleep. But, you had to move at some point. Your body would go into rigor mortis if you didnât. And you were scalding hot. Falling asleep in a sweatshirt, Loganâs arm hugging your waist. It was all too much for you.Â
That was when you felt it. You accidentally shifted your legs, moving further back. You felt him, poking the back of your thigh. Hard, frustrated, large. A warmness spread through your body as you realised it, making the climate even more unbearable in that bed. You knew that it was involuntary. It was just how the male body worked sometimes. You knew that this wasnât some indication that he reciprocated the feelings you harboured for him.Â
Somehow, that wasnât even the worst part about it. You could feel his heartbeat racing, as his chest was so close to your back. That was the worst part. Like this was exciting him, or making him nervousâeven in his sleep, even involuntary.Â
You were going to die. This was about to kill you. And youâd let it happen. You wanted it to kill you.Â
You had to get out of here, and that was now.Â
You sure looked comedic, trying to get out of that bed quickly while also not waking him. Like a newborn giraffe, attempting to stand up for the first time as a heavy comforter clung to its body.Â
But you did it, shutting the heavy hotel room door behind you, eyes darting around the hallway of rooms, looking to see if youâd been caught by anyone. Just as you started to walk to your own room, a voice from down the hallway stopped you.Â
âWhy were you in Loganâs room at the ass crack of dawn?âÂ
You spun to meet Angieâs gaze, and she came up to you, just having left her own room, dressed and ready for the day. You were in yesterdayâs clothes and makeup, looking positively frazzled. She read your expression in a second.Â
âOh my god,â Angie gasped, her hands flying to her mouth. âYou slept with him!âÂ
âNo, no, I promise I did not!â you defended quickly, voice laced with panic. âOr, I meanââ you fumbled over your words as you watched Angie try to not burst into laughter. âWe fell asleep next to each other, but we did not have sex.âÂ
âI donât really care what you did or did not do with him, because I trust you to still be good at your job. I justââ she paused, her face softening as she looked at you, the big sister mentality coming into place even though you shared no ties of blood. âI want you to know your worth, and that race car drivers are notorious for beingââÂ
You cut her off, voice steadier than before. âI know my worth,â you said, before adding with a dramatic sigh, âI just happen to be on sale for a certain sad and anxious American.âÂ
âI get it, it happens to the best of us,â Angie nodded, her lips curling into a smirk. âYou think you know what rock bottom feels like and then all of a sudden you want to fuck the blond guy.â
You could only laugh at her unusually crude words. Maybe it hit too close to home for her.Â
âYouâre engaged to a blond guy, Angie,â you pointed out.Â
Matthewâs hair was almost white, thatâs how blond he was. He most certainly had some Scandinavian in him. Logan would be considered brunet in comparison.Â
âLike I said, it just happens,â she shrugged, draping an arm around your shoulder. Back to comfortable camaraderie. âLetâs go get breakfast, lover girl.âÂ
. . .
On the other side of the door, Logan had woken up by the sound of it slamming shut. It took him a moment to piece together what had happened. His increased heart rate. His throbbing morning wood. You, running out of his hotel room before he could wake up. What the fuck did this mean? God, he felt like dying. Or maybe just taking a really long, cold shower.
. . .
Mexico City, Mexico
. . .
âThis is a waste of your time,â you called out from across the park, feeling the warm wind sweep through your hair as you carved the side of the bowl. You pushed your weight into the deck, the skateboard responding to your every shift, gliding along the concrete.
While youâd gotten to skate in some impressive parks around the world this yearâthis one in Mexico might take the price for being the best. It was gorgeous, in an area that you could tell flourished with graffiti and street artists. The concrete was smooth, the bowl was deep and large enough. The local skaters were talented and ranged from kids with their fathers to groups of teenagers.
âItâs not wasted time if itâs with you,â Logan said from his seat by the edge of the bowl, his eyesight focused through the little viewfinder on a vintage polaroid camera.
Youâd both been asked to go to dinner with some team members after the Mexican Grand Prix, but you had answered honestly with how youâd much rather go explore this skatepark that you had heard amazing things about. Logan had answered with less honesty that he was too tired. With one look, you could tell that he silently asked to join you instead.
He was happy to just sit in the evening sun, looking out over the people skating, and stealing a camera from you to take some photos. Youâd given him a polaroid camera that was only for your personal use. The film was getting expensive and your case of developed pictures was getting full, but you knew the memories would be worth it.
Logan wasnât sure that he was very good at photography at first. He was too impatient to wait at the film developing, thinking heâd ruined most of the shots before colour even started showing on the little squares of film.
But he hadnât ruined them. He just had to wait. And after he had waited, he was pretty damn proud of the outcome. There were gorgeous murals, a lot of the setting sun, some of kids skating aroundâbut most of them were of you. The sun kissed your skin, and the sweat from your ride clung to you, but still, there was something about the way Logan saw you through that camera lens. Young, sweetâmaybe even beautiful.
You rolled your eyes at his clichĂŠ words, pushing the tail of your board to get a bit more speed as you curved around the deep end of the bowl. Your body had memorized the movements of skating so deeply that you no longer thought about them; you just moved, instinct guiding you. It was moments like this when everything else fell away, and you were simply alive.
Logan snapped another picture, the click of the shutter audible even over the distant chatter of the park. You could tell he was smiling, even though the camera obscured half his face.
âYouâre such a shutterbug!â you teased, your board coming to a stop just below him in the bowl.
âAnd youâre very photogenic,â he shot back without missing a beat, the sound of the shutter following swiftly after.
He could only imagine what the picture would look like without it having fully developed yet. Your high pitched laugh materialising in a wide smile with crooked teeth. You looked like a little train conductor in your striped denim boiler suit, worn-out to the point of tearing, showing off banged-up knees and elbows from never enough wearing protective gear.
After what felt like hours of skating, you finally called it a night, and the two of you began to walk back to the hotel. The buildings around you, old and worn, were painted in soft pastel shades that had faded with age. Mexico City had that effectâbeautifully chaotic, with stories hidden in every crack and corner.
You were still buzzing with the adrenaline from skating, unable to stop yourself from laughing every few minutes. It was a lightness that came from doing something you loved, and being with someone who, in his own way, seemed to love it just as much.
Out of nowhere, you pointed up, a giggle bubbling over. âLook!â
Logan followed your gaze, his eyes landing on a pair of old, beat-up Converse dangling from a power line overhead.
âIâve always wanted to do that,â you said, half to yourself. âIsnât that used to mark a spot for drug dealers?â Logan asked, brow raised in amusement.
âMaybe. But itâs also used to commemorate things. Graduation, marriages, all sorts of stuff.â You gave him a playful smirk. âYou know, to mark a memory.â
âYou should do it, to commemorate this year.â
âActuallyâŚâ You trailed off, biting your lip. âIâve been thinking about getting a tattoo to commemorate this year.â
His eyebrows shot up, clearly interested. âReally? What of?â
âNot sure yet. Something small, meaningful. Iâll figure it out.â
Logan hummed in approval, then looked pointedly at your shoes. âYou know, you could commemorate this moment by tossing those sneakers up there. God knows theyâve seen better days.â
You glanced down at your well-worn Nikes, the soles starting to peel, the laces frayed. The cobalt swooshes had practically turned a faded navy-brown shade instead. Thinking about it, your suitcase was filled with other sneakers too.
âI mean, youâre not wrong. But how am I supposed to walk back to the hotel?â
Without hesitation, Logan smiled. âIâll carry you.â
You scoffed, shaking your head. âNo, you wonât.â
His response was swift. He knelt in front of you, leaning down to untie your shoes with an easy, confident motion.
âLogan,â you protested softy, when you really had nothing against it.
âCome on, just do it,â he coaxed, glancing up at you.
Who were you to say no to a man on his knees? You decided on listening to him. Stepping out of your shoes, you felt the warm ground beneath you, hurting slightly from tiny rocks and dirt digging into the soles of your sock-clad feet.
You tied the shoes together by the laces and with a pathetic first attempt, you launched them high up into the air, no way near the power line. Logan let out a little laugh in utter disbelief because he found the action so endearing.
âItâs harder than it looks!â you defended.
âThatâs what he said,â he joked under his breath as you tried again⌠and again.
Thankfully you were decent at other things, because throwing was not your forte. You were about to give up as you tossed one single last throw, groaning out of frustration as you tried your best. With eyes closed, you hoped for the best. A slow applause from Logan made you dare to look. And surely, there were your blue Nikes, dangling on the power line above you.
âOh my God, I did it!â you exclaimed, throwing your arms up in triumph. âLogan, take a picture, please!â
He chuckled, snapping a quick shot with the polaroid as you stood under the shoes, grinning like an idiot.
Before you knew it, Logan had swept you off your feet, literally, hoisting you onto his back. You kicked your legs weakly in protest, though your laugher told him you werenât actually mad. Graciously, he even picked your skateboard up, sticking it between his arm and ribs.
âNo, no, put me down. This is not working,â you squealed, feeling like you were about to fall off, your arms instinctively wrapping around his neck for balance.
âIâm not putting you down,â Logan retorted as he started walking with ease down the sidewalk with you on his back. âYouâll hurt your feet.â
He shuffled you higher up on his back, his hands grasping tightly around your legs. You were scared he was going to drop you, or worse, fall over because of the weight.
âPut me down.â You tried your best to sound serious, but it did nothing, he just kept on walking. The hotel was only minutes away and he didnât show any signs of slowing down.
âYouâre enjoying this,â Logan accused. âI know you are.â
You leaned your chin on his shoulder, finally giving in. âYou've carried me this far, you might as well take me home.â
As you approached the luxurious hotel the team stayed at, Logan didnât set you down until you were in the lift, earning looks from both guests and workers. Neither of you cared. He set you down gently, your sock-covered feet making a soft thud against the liftâs marbled flooring.
He gave you your skateboard back, shifting uncomfortably in his spot as the lift started moving upward. âI had fun tonight,â he whispered to you.
You leant against the wall, a loud exhale escaping you. âSo did I.â
As you watched Logan, the laughter that had filled the air moments ago now gave way to something quieter, something more charged.
He took a small step towards you before you could even think, his face soft but his eyes intense, searching yours as if waiting for permission. There were a million things you wanted to tell him, to interrupt him, just to make sureâbut the weight of the unspoken pulled you both together, speechless.
Your heart pounded in your chest as his gaze flickered down to your lips, then back to your eyes. You could feel the heat radiating from his skin, your heart racing in sync with his as your lips hovered inches apart. He was just as nervous as you were.
You both closed your eyes, anticipation tingling through you, waiting for that inevitable sparkâ
âHey!â Alexâs voice cut through the moment like a knife as the lift doors opened with a ding. He blinked at you both, stumbling away from each other, a curious smirk tugging at his lips. âWhere are your shoes, Paddy?â
You stared at him, dumbfounded, and then down at your sock-clad feet. âUhh⌠on a power line?â
Logan laughed, shaking his head. His cheeks were burning from what had almost happened, and from getting caught by Alex. It was so obvious. If only your rooms had been on a higher floor.
. . .
Las Vegas, USA
. . .
You changed after Mexico, and Logan took notice. You worked longer hoursâa lot more than you needed to. You didnât find the time to go exploring. Or if you did, you didnât post it to your instagram diary. You also drifted apart from Logan. Your conversations were shorter, your movie nights extinct, and you being a distraction for him was exchanged with you saying that you had more work to do. You became a ghost in his world, present but not truly there.
It didnât matter how many times Logan tried to talk to you about it. The message was clear. Youâd shut him out. And he couldnât for the life of him understand why.Â
Your evening in Mexico City had been magical; at least that was what he felt. And even though Alex had interrupted at the worst possible moment, Logan still naively thought youâd be able to go back to that magic if you got a chance alone together.Â
But you were busy in Brazil, and the promotional aspect of the Las Vegas Grad Prix was nothing short of crazy. Some might even have called it torturous. He just didnât find the right time, and you didnât even make the time for him to try.Â
The stumbling, awkward times he had triedâLogan couldnât even form a sentence. Heâd interrupt you when you were working, or catch you just as you were about to go to bed. It was never good enough. His emotions had shifted insanely fast, or maybe they had moved at a slow pace for such a long time that they now felt like a tidal wave hitting him straight in the heart.Â
He liked you.Â
Your obsession with tater tots, your inability to sit still, your love for shitty movies, your ability to always match the colour of your sneakers to your work clothes. It was all the little things. Your way of treating him like he wasnât wasted potential or fragile like fine china. That you knew how to deal with him, like this season wasnât the end of the world.Â
And the worst thing was that he was pretty damn sure that you liked him back. Yet, you were running.Â
. . .Â
You werenât there to bother him when he finished the race in Las Vegas. You didnât stand there with your camera, ready to get an unflattering picture of him dripping with sweat. And it wasnât like in Baku, where he had sensed something was wrong immediately. This was calmer, and Angie just told him that you were back at the hotel when he asked.Â
He got a point in Vegas, but you werenât there to capture it. He got to look happy in pictures for other photographers and he got to finally express some happiness in the post-race interviews. And while a part of him was over the moon, he couldnât stop thinking about how it seemed like you hadnât even seen him accomplish it.Â
That was why he now stood outside of your hotel room, freshly showered and changed but still buzzing with adrenaline, a shaking fist knocking lightly on the door.Â
He shifted his weight, unsure if he was meant to be here, but he needed to see you. He needed to talk to you. He needed to actually kiss you, without interruptions. The both of you needed to celebrate, to feel a night of joy after this nightmare of a season.Â
The girl who opened the door looked tired, clad in sweatpants and a hoodie draped over her head. Your makeup-less face showed dark circles under your eyesâsomething that had gotten worse in the last couple of weeks. You looked like you were on the move, already with your shoes on and your suitcase packed, standing right in the doorway.Â
Logan saw it, but in his excited stateâhe didnât immediately connect the dots.Â
âI got pointsâ,â Logan started, his voice brimming with pride before he corrected himself, the enthusiasm in his tone softening slightly. âWell, one point, but still.â
âI know, Logan,â you replied gently. âIâm proud of you.âÂ
Even if you hadnât been at the paddock tonight, you hadnât kept your eyes off the livestream for even a second. You may even have shed a tear as he crossed the finish line.Â
Logan beamed for a second, the glow of the accomplishment still warming his chest. âYou werenât there after the race, so I thought Iâd come see you now,â he continued, a hint of nervousness as he paced uncomfortably in place. âA bunch of us are going out to dinnerââÂ
But then his attention drifted. His brow furrowed, his attention drawn to the luggage again as realisation dawned.
âWhy is your bag packed already?âÂ
You looked at the suitcase, the same realisation flashing across your face as if you'd forgotten it was there, or perhaps hoped he wouldn't notice, and then back up at Logan with a visible uncertainty. You shook your head as you knew you had to explain it to him.Â
âTheyâve agreed on an exemption from my contract,â you said quietly. âIâm not working the last two races.âÂ
âB-but why?â Logan stammered.Â
âBecause I asked for it,â you shrugged with an audible sigh. âI have a flight to catch tonight.âÂ
Logan felt his stomach drop as he took in your words. âWait, youâre going home?âÂ
âNo,â you scoffed. âIâm not sure Iâm welcome there.âÂ
The weight of those words settled heavy between you both. Logan was unsure of what to say. He felt like he knew more about your family than you let on, but he hadnât expected you to be this lost. He thought you were still figuring it out, like him.
He swallowed hard. His mind raced, piecing together the fragments of the conversation, but nothing added up. âThen whereâ?âÂ
âIâm starting out in San Francisco,â you said, cutting him off before he could finish. âAnd then Iâll see from there on.â
San Francisco. Youâd mentioned it numerous times before. You had friends there. Professional skateboarders. It made sense that was where you were running to. It made sense that you had been distant these last weeks. Because this couldnât have been an easy decision for you.Â
âI know weâve talked a lot about your future, but mine is just as uncertain, and I need to do something about it. I canât go home to a place where I donât belong. I need to find my own ground.âÂ
You were almost desperate as you spoke.Â
Logan took a step closer, still having a hard time grasping what was even going on. âWasnât that what this year was all about?âÂ
âIt was always a fixed-term contract, you know that. Angie just bought me some time to figure things out,â you explained.Â
âSo, running away is you figuring things out?â His words came out sharper than intended, and regret instantly washed over him.
âLogan,â you said, almost pleading now, as if asking him not to push any further.
Maybe you werenât running away now. Maybe you had already ran, the start of this season being your first stop.Â
âIâm sorry, I justââ Logan paused, his hands gesturing toward you as if he wanted to hold on to something, anything, to keep you from slipping away. âI have something to say to you.âÂ
âI know you do,â you replied instantly, not letting him speak any further. Your voice creaked as you felt a cry clogging up your throat. âTrust me, I do too. But itâs not the right time for either of us. It will only complicate things.âÂ
Logan opened his mouth to argue, but shut it just as quickly. The words he longed to say hung heavy in his throat, unsaid and unacknowledged. He knew you were right. He knew it. But the words felt hollow in the face of you leaving. The question hung in his throat, unspoken. Would you stay if I asked?
You both knew that the answer to that question would be yes, in a heartbeat. He couldnât ask that from you. He would never be the one to hold you back. You had enough people against you. He needed to be with you, even if that meant oceans apart.
âIs this goodbye, then?â His voice cracked as he asked it.Â
You shook your head slowly, reaching into your carry-on bag. âI have this for you.â From the depths of the small bag, you pulled out a simple, leather-bound photo album, perfectly pristine, and handed it to him.Â
Logan looked down, fingers tracing the edges before opening it. Revealed was a collection of photos you had taken over the past yearâcandid shots, moments of him between races, behind the scenes. His chest tightened as he looked at the first one, an image of him laughing, helmet in hand, caught mid-conversation with his team. You had always seen him differently, and now, looking at these photos, he could see how much it meant to you.
There was a mixture of digital, film, and polaroid pictures, all signed with the corresponding city and date. Youâd started this collection when you were simply work acquaintances. The best photos were the ones that had nothing to do with racing. Sightseeing, views from hotel room balconies, and restaurants with the local cuisine.Â
His ultimate favourite that you had included was the one he had taken of you in Mexico, barefoot with your sneakers hanging over you on a power line.Â
âIâm sorry I didnât tell you sooner,â you said, the guilt clear in your voice. âI didnât know until this morningââÂ
âYou donât owe anyone an explanation,â he cut you off gently, his eyes still focused on the photos.
You bit your lip, still on the verge of tears. Seeing him so captivated by your year together in photos made it much harder.Â
He looked up, gently closing the album, and with a quick motion, he had embraced your body, wrapping his arms around you with a loud sigh. His t-shirt was soft against your skin as you felt it grow wet from your tears that had finally fallen. You could feel his heartbeat, ticking impatiently.Â
âDo you think Iâm making a mistake by leaving?âÂ
Again, if he said yes⌠You would rethink everything.Â
âNo, I think youâre doing what you need to do.âÂ
Logan was determined.
âI really have to go now,â you said softly, but you didnât make any effort to move away from his embrace. You leaned into him instead, your head resting against his chest. You felt his trembling breaths, almost like a stuttering, keeping him from crying out loud.Â
âJust a couple more seconds,â Logan whispered into your hair, his arms tightening around you. âI hope you find what youâre looking for,â he added, a slight tone of hope noticeable.Â
âI know we both will.âÂ
Finally, you pulled back, but you left the goodbye unsaid. You reached to squeeze his hand as a last gesture. Youâd never been good at goodbyes, so you left it to the lights. The soft glow of the Las Vegas skyline was the only thing illuminating the hotel hallway as you flipped the switch and slipped out the door, making a beeline for the lift.Â
It was the end of an era. Logan knew it before the year had even started. He just hadnât imagined it to feel this importantâto feel this uncertain. He hadnât imagined you. And when he started to imagine you, it was already too late. It had always been too late.
He tried to tell himself that he hadnât lost you. But it felt strangely like it.Â
Logan stood still in that hotel corridor for way too long, staring at the spot where you had been. This was the way it had to be, but he wasnât sure that made it any easier.Â
. . .
Fort Lauderdale, USA
. . .
Logan went home after the season ended. He stayed for the prize giving ceremony. He stayed long enough to say goodbye to the people that it mattered to. Then he went home, and he wasnât sure how he would look back at his past experiences. Now it mostly hurt, but stillâhe had made it there in the first place.Â
Home meant Florida this time. England, or Europe in general, had been his home for most of his conscious life, yet he never felt homesick for it. That was until now, when it wasnât his home anymore. Florida was nice, it was always just nice. The weather was warm and the beaches were pretty, but when he was sunburnt to the point of peeling and had sand in his shoes, he missed the bleak English mornings with rain pattering against the windows.Â
He signed for Indycar in the end, and when the season started in March, Logan found it refreshing. He loved racing, and he loved that he got a chance to do it again. He didnât love the pressure put on him, mostly by strangers on the internet. He didnât love the rookie title because he wasnât treated like a rookie. Heâd raced in the pinnacle of motorsport, he should know better. He should be better. Logan tried to not let it get to him, because in the endâhe was the one that had made it to the pinnacle. Not a lot of other drivers could say that, especially other Americans. Â
You liked every single one of his Instagram posts. Commented when he did well in races. That was the closest thing you two had to communication. Logan understood you, thoughâthat you needed to leave when you had the chance to. He couldnât have changed that. He wouldnât have changed that.Â
He thought of messaging you, but he had a hard time figuring out what to say. Writing down something long in his notes app, only to cringe at himself seconds later. Nothing seemed right and nothing seemed fair, like he was guilt-tripping you into reminiscing the last year. He knew what he felt for you, but he could never force you to be closer to him, to give up your chance at exploring and finding yourself. It was better to just let you live, but he knew what you felt for him too, that was why it was so hard for him to stay away.Â
Stuck between a rock and a hard place.Â
Logan liked every single one of your Instagram posts as well. You kept up with the diary, even if the travelling wasnât as rapid as under the racing season.Â
He saw pictures of you all over the American west coast. You were on cable cars and steep streets in San Fransisco. You were skating in Venice Beach, surfing in Santa Cruz, and hiking in Yosemite. You went on road trips up north to go to concerts in Portland and Seattle for bands that Logan had never heard of.Â
You hadnât been kidding when you said you had friends there. The skateboarding collective you lived with in Cole Valley was a never ending stream of eclectic people coming and leaving.Â
Your closest friend was the girl with bright pink hair that he had spotted on your Instagram before from your numerous university art projects. She skated on a competitive level and you would join to take photos of her.Â
Another one of your friends was a boy who looked strangely like TimothĂŠe Chalamet. He was a tattoo artist who would go skating with you at night to spot pretty sunsets. He tried not to be jealous. He should have confessed his feelings for you to even have a reason to be jealous.Â
Your posts became more scarce during the early summer. When you posted a slideshow of pictures of Tater Tot with a long caption about his passing, Logan understood why. He felt tears forming in his eyes as he watched the pictures of you and the golden retriever, the fur around his face having faded and his nose all pink from old age.Â
He felt like reaching out to you even more after that, especially since you were back home with your family and he could only imagine how that felt for you. When you posted a picture of a new family dog not too long after, with a normal boring dog name that he could tell you hadnât chosen, he felt a slight anger inside.
You went skating around Europe after that, the girl with pink hair by your side. You posted a video of Angie trying to skate while in Barcelona, and Logan connected the dots that you had gone to the Spanish Grand Prix. He liked that you were still welcomed by the team, but he was unsure if he wouldâve gotten a similar treatment.Â
On a weekend without racing, Logan was back home in Fort Lauderdale. He spent the evening with his brother and some friends in their backyard. He was there, but he didnât feel present. Something you had taught him stemmed from anxiety. It wasnât as bad as it was during his last F1 season, but he still liked to look at your pictures as a distraction when he felt anxious. The stories they told were still better than what was going on in his actual life.Â
âSince when are you interested in skateboarding?â his brother's voice broke through his focus. Logan barely had time to register him hovering over his shoulder before he took a seat across from him, sinking into a deck chair with a teasing grin.
Logan didnât realise that he had a video of yours on repeat. It was you in a skatepark in Copenhagen, landing a trick youâd never done before.Â
âOh, Iâm notââ he started, his tongue suddenly feeling clumsy in his mouth as he fumbled for an excuse. âItâs the old Williams photographer, sheâs travelling to all these places to skate. Itâs quite cool to see.âÂ
His brother raised an eyebrow, clearly not buying it. Logan flushed under the scrutiny, knowing full well that his brother could read him like an open book. He didnât just think it was quite cool. He was investedâand not just in the skateboarding.
âA girl, you say?â his brother pressed.Â
âItâs not like that, sheâs on the other side of the world,â Logan protested quickly, slipping his phone back in his pocket as if to hide any evidence of his admiration.Â
His brother could only laugh at his poor attempt of conviction. âWould it be like that if she was closer?âÂ
Logan froze, unable to answer. His brother was able to read his expression all too well again, his smile softening as he watched Logan carefully.Â
âI am taking that as a yes.âÂ
. . .
Oxfordshire, UK
. . .
Angela and Matthew Thompson, read the sign outside of the rented out manor house. Somewhere in the English countryside, as the evening sun cast a golden glow over the courtyard. Youâd snapped photos of the garden and the exterior, but the sign stopped you for a moment.Â
You found it odd, firstly seeing Angie be called by her actual first name and then secondly, not by her maiden surname. You guessed that was what it was likeâgetting married. The formal side of it all, at least.Â
Click.Â
You got a quick photo of the sign before you entered back into the manor. The big ballroom was filled with the soft murmur of guests and the rustling of chiffon dresses.Â
The ceremony had been earlier during the day, a small gathering with only immediate family around. Youâd only been there because of your duty to photograph the entire thing. Otherwise you probably wouldnât have. Angieâs cousin was her only bridesmaid and Matthew had his closest childhood friend as his only groomsman. Both their parents were present as well, and Angieâs grandmother had been ring bearer. Adorable, that was the only way to describe it. Quaint and quite literally perfect, in the manorâs rose garden with birds chirping and a violin player.Â
Click.
You stood in the doorway to the ballroom, adjusting your camera, scanning the scene for the perfect shot. You found it in two of the partyâs younger guests, looking at the wedding cake with temptation in their eyes. The was just something about kidâs in formal clothes. A little crooked bowtie and sparkly silver ballerina shoes.Â
The reception was bigger, with friends, distant relatives and work colleagues invited. Your family was included in that, but you had gotten good at keeping a distance and they had gotten better at ignoring you instead of arguing with you. That was some sort of improvement. Having the excuse that you were technically working was also in your favour, even if Angie probably wanted to drink you under the table and get you dancing one of Matthewâs rich colleagues.Â
There hadnât been a dress code beyond formal, but somehow a lot of the guests seemed to match, making the photography blend together in perfect hues. You couldnât wait to edit and put them together. Sage green, baby pink and light yellow. The men and their suits in tones of beige and blue. You guessed that was the English summer in colours.Â
You were never really one to dress up nicely. You preferred something practical, but even you felt a little whimsical tonight. A periwinkle dress and white heelsâa complete juxtaposition of your usual streetwear and sneakers.Â
Click.
You managed to get a picture of the happy couple from far way. Candid, when they thought no one was watching. Those were usually the ones that turned out the best. No posing, no fixed smiles. Angie showed a wide and almost painfully happy grin as Matthew whispered something in her ear, sneaking in a kiss on her cheek. Only they would know what had been said when they, years down the line, flipped through the photo album from their special day.Â
That was the beauty of photos. The secret stories they held.Â
You smiled to yourself, getting lost in the scene that showed through the viewfinder, shifting to find something new and equally magical in the movements of the ballroom.Â
Suddenly, all you could see was one singular familiar face.Â
You blinked, not believing your eyes before you zoomed in. Tall, blond, blue eyes catching the lightâtalking to a man you recognised as a Williams engineer. It couldnât be⌠but it totally was.Â
In a navy tailored suit, his tie slightly loosened, he raised a champagne coupe to his lips. He smiled at something the engineer said, flashing his teeth. You took a picture, and then one moreâit was achingly familiar, yet so different.
It was like he knew he had a camera pointed towards him with how quick he reacted. He hadnât even seen you when you took the first one, but by the time you were about to take a third one, his face was turned completely towards youâlooking at your lens, looking at you.Â
And of course, he waved. He smiled and he waved.Â
Fuck, fuck, fuck.Â
He quickly excused himself to the engineer and was then set on only you. He crossed the room with easy confidence, threading through the crowd. Since when was he so smooth?
You lowered your camera as your breath got caught in your throat, finally looking at him not through the viewfinder.Â
âLogan,â you whispered, voice softer than expected.Â
He said your name with an easy familiarity, one youâd almost forgotten. It pulled you back six months in time in mere seconds, as if nothing had changed.Â
âUhm, H-how did you get here?â you stammered, cursing yourself for sounding so surprised. You shouldâve known heâd be here. Angieâs wedding had been a big talking point even back when he was driving for Williams.Â
âThereâs these things called airplanes,â he teased, the corners of his mouth quirking up. âEver heard of them?â
You rolled your eyes, but your smile was impossible to suppress. Silence fell over the two of you as you struggled to find ways to continue the conversation. The tension was palpable, stretching thin as if either of you could snap it with the wrong word. Logan looked lost too, like the confidence he thought he had washed away when he finally got close to you.Â
Youâd thought about itâwhat it would be like to talk to him again if you ever got the chance. Being speechless was never in those thoughts.Â
âYouâre hair has gotten long,â you blurted out, desperate to fill the silence and because it was honestly the first thing you noticed to be different about him. His blond hair had grown longer, with a slight wave to it, almost curling at the ends.
âIs that a compliment?â Logan mused.
âYes,â you were too quick to reply. âOr, I think so. Itâs different.âÂ
Logan chuckled softly as you winced at how clumsy you sounded.Â
âSo⌠you work weddings too?â he asked, glancing at the camera still in your hands.Â
Great. He was shit at small talk too.Â
âOnly when itâs Angie,â you answered, trying to sound at ease. âI promised to make her look gorgeous even before she met Matthew.âÂ
You did not remember the first time she asked you. It was a decade ago at this point. But every time you had taken a photo of herâprofessionally and privatelyâshe liked to remind you of how she felt like no one else ever had captured her fairly, or flatteringly. She was always your biggest fan, even when you were just taking grainy pictures of your friends at the local skatepark.Â
âCan I see?â Logan asked and you handed him the camera without a doubt.Â
There was something so familiar in the gesture, like muscle memory kicking in. You used to share everything with him. You were happy to know that even through it all, he at least still cared about your photography. Â
Before you could even react, he raised the camera and snapped a picture of you, completely unprepared. The flash was too bright, and you squealed in surprise.
âDude, what the fuck?â you exclaimed, blinking away the aftershock of the flash.
Logan raised an eyebrow. âDude? Youâve turned American!â Â
You couldnât help the laugh that escaped you. âI have not turned American.â
Logan joined your laughter, but only for a secondâsomething on the camera catching his attention instead. He looked at it intensely, only for you to realise that it was the photo heâd taken of you. Overexposed and blurry. Not perfect in any way, but candidly capturing a moment.Â
âMy god, you look lovely.âÂ
He said it softly, like an afterthought, like he didnât mean for you to hear it.Â
Heat crept up to your cheeks as he handed you the camera back to you. You couldnât look too long at the photo heâd taken of you, so you pressed the button to show the one taken prior. It was him, of courseâsmiling as he had clocked you from across the room.Â
âSo do you,â you said, showing him the picture of himself. âHappiness suits you.â
Loganâs smile faltered for a moment as you surprised even yourself with your honesty. You realised how he could overthink what you had just saidâlike happiness was something new for him to express. And maybe that was true. But it was a sad realisation, and a mortifying thing for someone else to have discovered about oneself.Â
Before an uncomfortable silence fell between the two of you, a familiar voice broke through the moment.
âThere you are!â Alexâs voice was bright, his cheeks tinted pink from champagne and dancing. âIâve been looking for you!â
You turned, grateful for the distraction, as he came up and enveloped you in a hug. You smiled, hugging him back, telling him how youâd missed him.Â
âLogan!â he exclaimed as he turned his attention to him. âItâs so good to see you.âÂ
They did one of those awkward side-hugs that men insisted on giving each other. Logan said something similar in response, his voice warm but his eyes still flicked to you. You gathered from just that little interaction that their departure mustâve been stretched and difficult. They were good friends, for christ sake, but Williams had made everything toxic.Â
Alex beamed. âWell, come on! Itâs my turn to pester Paddy with a camera. Scoot together.â
Before either of you could protest, Alex grabbed your camera, leaving you both standing there, shoulder to shoulder. A fire burning through the fabric where your bare shoulder touched his blazer.Â
Click.Â
. . .
After long speeches, and first dances, and consuming too much wedding cake, you found yourself on a balcony, taking a breather, looking out over the garden. You heard the door open behind you, and it was like you could feel that it was his presence. You let out a small laugh as you kept your eyes focused on the view.Â
âWhat are we looking at?â Loganâs voice came soft and steady beside you, making you turn your head.
âMy sister sharing a cigarette with a Williams mechanic,â you scoffed, nodding towards two figures below the balcony.Â
Your sister, known as an overly ambitious goody two shoes, wasnât only sharing the cigaretteâshe was shotgunning it. Your past self wouldâve wanted to go tattle to your parents, but now you were kind of glad to see a human, imperfect side of your sister, acting promiscuous with a greasy mechanic.
There was a brief silence as the evening air wrapped around you. Logan slipped his hands into his pockets, shifting his weight slightly.
âHowâs it been? With your family and all?â he slowly asked, trying to make it sound casual.Â
âThey still treat me like a toddler, if thatâs what youâre wondering. But we donât argue anymoreâjust pretend each other doesnât exist,â you scoffed.Â
He glanced at you, the hint of a frown on his face, but didnât press further. Instead, he pulled out his phone from his suit pocket as it vibrated, the faint sound breaking the quiet between you.
You let your eyes linger on him for a moment. The small gesture shouldnât have meant anything, but something about the way his fingers moved so delicately over the screen made you pause. Then you saw itâthe photo behind his clear phone case.
âThatâs from Mexico,â you said without thinking.Â
Logan glanced at you, then back at his phone, a faint smile tugging at his lips. âYeah. My favourite from the album you gave me.â
You blinked, remembering the moment instantlyâtossing shoes over a power line, him carrying you home, Alex doing what he did bestâinterrupting.
âI know itâs slightly pathetic, but that was one of the best days of my life,â Logan admitted, shying away from looking at you.Â
It had been one of the few peaceful moments amidst the storm of races, pressure, and long, chaotic nights. It was supposed to be just another moment, but it had become more. You both knew it meant so much more.Â
âItâs not pathetic, Logan. At least, I donât think so,â you reassured him. Your heart clenched at his honesty, but you felt it all the same as him.Â
Logan let out a small breath of laughter, but the smile that accompanied it didnât reach his eyes. He slid his phone back into his pocket, but the photo lingered in your mind. Logan glanced back at the ballroom, then back at you, his gaze lingering as if he was working up the courage to say something else.
But then his eyes dropped, right to where your arm touched against your ribs, a small glint of ink peeking out, darker than any of your other tattoos. Logan froze.Â
âThatâs my numberâŚâ he said, his voice soft with disbelief.Â
You felt your breath hitch as he stared at it. You instinctively rubbed your fingers over the tattoo, tracing the outline of the small F1 car inked delicately with his racing number on the nose. You suddenly felt very exposed, but not in a bad way. You moved your arm to give him a better view.Â
âWhat other number could I possibly have picked?â you wondered, tilting your head. âI did tell you that I was planning to get one.âÂ
His hand nervously reached for yours, his thumb brushing over the tattoo with tenderness, touching you in a way he hadnât before. The new ink sat just centimetres above the tiny paw prints you had in memory of Tater Tot. Logan couldâve cried on the spot.Â
âI really like it,â he whispered.Â
He dared to meet your gaze. You stood there in silence for a moment, the weight of everything between you suddenly heavier than ever. His thumb continued to caress the tattoo.Â
âAre we okay, Logan?â
He exhaled as you asked it, out of relief it seemed.Â
âI thought everything would be different, seeing you again,â Logan explained. âBut I strangely feel like nothing has changed since Vegas.âÂ
You nodded, a smile creeping up on your face, as you could only agree with him. The distance, the time apart, hadnât dulled anything between you. If anything, it had only clarified what had always been there.
In the background, you could still hear the music play loudly from inside the ballroom. Your sister and her mechanic were long gone from the garden. You had nothing to worry about and everything to win.Â
âSo⌠how do you feel about dancing at weddings, Sargeant?âÂ
. . .
The manor had rooms for all the guests to stay overnight. You stumbled into yours in the small hours of the nightâtipsy from champagne, tired from dancing. Logan was right behind you, laughing at you almost falling over from trying to unclasp your heels.
âNeed some help there?â Logan teased.
âIâve got it,â you mumbled, finally getting them off to feel the carpet against your bare feet.
Logan took a stance by the window, hands shoved into the pockets of his navy suit pants, looking out onto the moonlit garden. His jaw was tense, a sign that he was thinkingâno, overthinking.
You watched him for a moment, how his fingers flexed slightly in his pockets, how his shoulders rose and fell with a breath, before you went into the en suite bathroom, desperate to get your makeup off after wearing it all day. It was an oddly familiar feeling, being alone with him in a hotel room.
The rest of the wedding had been so lovely. It hadnât mattered much about what had been left unsaid, but instead what mattered was the way you acted towards each other now. You had been bracing yourself for the moment it all would break loose the entire night, ever since your eyes met his across the reception hall, but you had no idea how to start.
It turned out, you didnât have to.
âYou wanna know something?â Loganâs voice was slow, his back still turned against you, as he spoke. He waited for you to say something, but all you did was mumble a huh from the bathroom, clearly more focused on your makeup than on him.
He took a breath, slowly turning to you. He felt himself melt at the sight of youâin your pretty dress and a squeaky clean bare face. His gaze held yours, and in that quiet second, the world shifted.
âIâm tired of acting like Iâm not in love with you.â
The words slipped from his lips easily, almost like they had always been there, waiting for this moment to escape.
You froze in your movement, putting your skincare back in your makeup bag, not sure that you had heard him correctly. âWhat?â
âI said,â Logan repeated, a touch firmer, âIâm tired of acting like Iâm not in love with you.â
You stepped away from the sink, opting to stand in the doorway instead as you watched himâhow emotions washed over his face like colours melting together in a sunset. You had a hard time hiding the smile that began to form on your face. âYouâre in love with me?â
Logan shifted, looking almost sheepish as he rubbed the back of his neck. âDonât look so smug,â he muttered, though a smirk tugged at the corner of his mouth. âYouâre gonna make me regret saying anything.â
But you didnât feel smugânot in the slightest. Your chest instead filled with warmth, something dangerously close to⌠well, love.
âWell, excuse me for being a little happy about the fact that you love me back,â you said, almost argumentatively, crossing your arms.
âBack? You love me too?â Logan walked closer, almost stumbling as he passed the corner of the bed.
âYeah, dumbass.â You rolled your eyes at his oblivion. âIâve had a crush on you since before you even knew I existed.â
âA crush?â Logan chuckled, a sound full of disbelief and a little wonder. âHow long have youââ
âSince Baku,â you interrupted, your voice quieter now, more serious. âI think Iâve loved you since you stayed with me in Baku.â
That admission hung in the air, heavy with memories of long flights, foreign cities, whispered conversations in crowded spaces, and the closeness that had grown between you. Logan stared at you like he couldnât quite believe what he was hearing.
Maybe the two of you hadnât exactly known what the other wanted to say, that last night in Vegas. Or maybe, neither of you couldâve expected the intensity of emotions that would come to the surface when you finally did get to say what you had wanted to.
âWhy are you still standing so far away?â Logan took a deep breath, his heart pounding against his ribs. âCome take whatâs yours,â he then whispered, his voice a soft command that sent shivers down your spine.
You didnât need to be told twice.
Without another thought, you exited the bathroom and crossed the room in a few quick strides. You felt your pulse thrumming in your ears as you reached him, and without hesitation, you slid your hands up his chest, feeling a steady heartbeat beneath your palms.
Loganâs arms closed around you, his warm hands brushing the skin of your back, exposed by the low hem of your dress. He pulled you closer, until there was no space left between you.
His lips found yours, soft and sure. You melted into the kiss, into him. This time, there was no one to interrupt you. Months of longing and unspoken feelings poured into one single moment.
As soon as Logan felt you smile against his lips, he was sure world peace was achievable. With more confidence, he kissed you with a feverish intent, slipping his tongue in your mouth, falling backwards onto the mattress with you on top of him.
Moving your legs, you straddled his lap, sinking down comfortably on top of him while you put your arms around him. He rested against the bed frame, hair getting messed up as your fingers played at the nape of his neck. You continued to kiss, his hands rushing to touch your bodyâone on your cheek and the other on your waist. Your dress bunched up around your thighs as you pressed closer to him, feeling the heat of his body through layers of fabric.
You pulled apart after a moment, but only far enough to inhale, your noses still touching. The room was dead quiet, save for the panting sound of your breathing.
âYou have no idea the things Iâve wanted to say to you,â Logan murmured, resting his forehead against yours. âThe things Iâve held backâŚâ he added softly, his thumb now gently stroking the side of your face.
âYou could tell them to me now,â you teased, sneaking in a small peck. A smirk tugged at the corner of Loganâs lips. âMy brain canât really focus when youâre sat on me like this,â he said, his fingers tracing slow circles along the exposed skin of your upper thigh.
You bit your bottom lip, brain filled with lust and sudden bravery. âUnzip me, please?â
âShould weâ I just donât want to rush anything,â Logan mumbled out of nervousness.
âYou donât think a year worth of tension is enough?â you whispered, smiling.
Logan swallowed, his hand daring to move behind you. The sound of your zipper easily sliding open filled the silence between you as his fingers delicately touched your exposed back. His eyes never left your body as the thin straps fell off your shoulders, the top half of your dress pooling around your waist. With a soft tug, you were all exposed. The white lace of your bra doing almost nothing to conceal your chest.
You were privy to his persistent stare at your body. You couldnât pretend you werenât, and your satisfaction was hard to withhold, a devious smile forming on your lips. His hands moved under your skirt, gently lifting it over your head, revealing delicate white lace panties that matched your bra.
âDid you plan this?â Logan had to fight himself to not let his jaw physically drop at the sight of you.
He held a certain emotion in the way he looked at you. Youâd seen desire before in a loverâs eyes. This was softer. This was different. Devotion, maybe. Love, most definitely.
âBetter safe than sorry,â you shrugged.
With a soft exhale, he chuckled in utter disbelief. Dipping his head, he couldnât help but kiss the valley between your breasts, nipping and sucking at the soft skin. His hair tickled against your neck as his mouth explored, surely leaving a mark or two.
With a quick movement, he unclasped your bra, discarding it as he continued to kiss your skin. Your breasts, your collarbones, your neck and jaw. He even moved to kiss a spot on your arm, making sure you took notice at how his lips gently pressed against your tattoo of his racing number.
You both took a moment, letting your eyes linger on each otherâs. It was hard to find things to say, but you guessed the silence, panting breaths and growing humidity were enough to express what you both wanted.
Your fingers diligently started to unbutton his shirt, leaving kisses on his neck and sternum as each inch of his skin was revealed for you. When you reached the last button, your hands dangerously close to his lower stomach, Logan moved swiftly to remove his shirt in one go, tossing it on the floor to land next to your dress.
Immediately, you sunk your fingers back into his blond waves, tugging lightly as you kissed his swollen lips. He matched your ferocity, sliding his hands from your waist down to your ass, squeezing over the soft lace. Both of you groaned at the feeling of your hips grinding down onto the fabric covering his growing hardness, almost a surprised feeling at how quickly it all had evolved.
âIâm starting to think you might like me or something,â you giggled, like an angel.
Logan wanted to argue. He wanted to say something witty. But he had no choice. With your wandering hands, all he could do was bite down on his lip to drown a pathetic moan trying to escape. With your wandering hands, you pulled his zipper open, helping him out of the rest of his clothes.
His cock sat hard in the space between your bodies, and as you tentatively touched him, feeling hot and heavy in your hand, he whined out a sting of curses. His stomach flexed as he ached for real friction, your hand only lazily stroking him. He groaned, head falling back to hit the headboard. The loveliest of pinks suffused his cheeks, a trail of rose-coloured blotches lingering all the way down his chest.
He tried to drag you closer to him with a firm grip on your hips, desperately searching for more. His hand found its way down between your legs, gently touching over a wet patch that had formed on your panties.
You hummed at the sensation, kissing his jawline, feeling him tense at your touch. âCan I ride you?â
âMhm, yeah⌠you want that?â Logan panted, gentle little breaths pushing past his lips.
Nodding enthusiastically, you placed your bottom lip between your teeth as you looked at him, eyes darkened. âI have condoms in the bathroom,â you said getting off of his lap, walking over. At the loss of touch, Logan couldnât help but audibly whine.
You made a point to shake your hips as you walked. You knew you had his eyes on you. After fetching the little foil packet from your makeup bag, you stopped in the doorway to pull your underwear off, dragging the flimsy lace agonisingly slowly down your legs as Logan could only watch.
âYou look heavenly,â he whispered as you towered over him to kiss him, before straddling his lap again, your naked body finally touching his without anything in between.
Logan swallowed his moans as you carefully tore open the condom packet and rolled it over his sensitive length. He helped you lift you up on your knees, enough to align himself with your soaking entrance. A year of tension really was enough foreplay. Fluttering around him, you adjusted to all of him, carefully and slowly moving into a perfect rhythm.
You couldnât be held responsible for the words and sounds leaving your mouth as you rocked against him. His hands gripped your waist and then your ass, kneading the soft flesh, spilling out between his fingers. You heard him suck in a breath as your fingers got entangled in his hair, gently pulling at the ends.
âLogan,â his name left your mouth with a delicate whine.
âHm?â
You needed him to look at you. Loganâs hand found home on your cheeks, keeping his eyes tightly locked with yours as you connected in the most primal way. âTell me Iâm yours,â he whispered gently, feeling himself bottom out inside of you.
âYouâre mine, all mine, baby,â you reassured, finding his lips for a messy kiss.
Slowly, you started bouncing faster, Loganâs hands guided you, helping you with every move, rise and fall. You were both stuttering out moans at the almost overwhelming feelingâthe wetness, the squeezing, the friction.
It didnât take long before you were both panting, flushed messes, the movement slowing down as the desperate feeling of release grew stronger.
âAre your legs getting tired?â Logan asked, voice hoarse. âF-fuck, let me help.â
He tilted you, shifting to a more horizontal position, as he wrapped his arms around your waist, letting you bury your face in the crook of his neck, sucking and kissing wherever you could reach. With forceful thrusts, he up fucked into you, digging his fingers into the fat of your hips to pull you even closer.
He took care of you. Your tits bounced against him as you moved together. The tension inside of you only growing and spiralling. Logan reached between your bodies, moving his limber fingers to circle your puffy clit.
You repeated his name through broken moans, all choked and caught in your throat, as he continued his mission. Through deep breaths, you got lost in the scent of him. Cologne, musky and warm. It was almost distracting, until he reached a soft spot, thrusting inside of you.
âIâve got you,â he reassured. âIâm right here, let it all out.â Logan brought you over the edge. You bit down on his shoulder as the feeling washed over you, a white fire lighting from inside of you. His writhing against you told you he wasnât long after, filling the condom as he rode out both of your highs. He rested still inside of you for a while as you both caught your breaths.
You needed help to get off him, your legs still shaking. With a tired moan, he slipped out and you collapsed on the bed next to him, feeling the sheets ruffle around you. Logan glimmered under the moonlight seeping in through the windows, as sweat stuck to his flushed skin. His outgrown hair falling over his forehead.
You faced each other on the bed, your voices barely above whispers, not necessarily thanking each other, but more just mumbles about how special this felt. Loganâs hand found your arm, delicately tracing the car tattooed on your bicep. It tickled, so you let out a breathy laugh as you placed your hand on top of his.
Loganâs lips curled into a lazy smile as he felt your reaction. âDid you get any other tattoos?â
âNope,â you replied, shaking your head lightly. âI think youâve seen them all now.â
There was a softness in his expression that made you feel safer than ever before. It was the kind of comfort that came with time, with knowing someone deeply and being known in return.
âWhen did you know that you liked me?â you asked suddenly, thinking back to your own admission about falling for the sight of him through your lens before you had even had a conversation together.
âIn Australia,â he said after a beat, his voice gentle. âYou were talking so fondly about tater tots.â
âTater tots?â you echoed with a grin. âThatâs when you knew?â
You had a feeling it wasnât only about your love for fried potatoes, thinking about what had happened just moments before that conversation. He had started to like you because you cared about him in a moment where he felt his weakest.
âI was quietly observing you before that, but I think that was our first actual conversation,â Logan said, reminiscing. âAnd then,â he continued, his tone growing softer, âI just kept falling for you. Every city, every race, every little thing you did.â
Your heart warmed in your chest as his words washed over you. You felt the pull of the past, the shared experiences, the way your lives had intertwined across the globe.
âSeeing you throw your sneakers over the power line in Mexico made me realise that I love you,â Logan finally whispered.
âI love you too,â you mumbled against his lips, reaching to gently kiss him again⌠and again.
Afterward, you left the bed to take a moment for yourself in the bathroom. Discarding the condom, peeing to prevent a UTI, staring at yourself in the mirror for an undisclosed amount of time. You looked like a mess, but a beautiful messâwith splotchy love bites and scratches.
You turned the shower on, knowing that you wouldnât be able to sleep if you didnât get the clinging feeling of sweat off your body.
âAre you getting in with me?â you asked Logan, peeping out behind the bathroom door to hide your naked body, spotting him still sat on the bed, the sheets covering him.
Logan lifted his gaze from the floor, meeting yours with a slow smile. He didnât move; he only tilted his head in thought. âWhy does that feel more intimate than what we just did?â
âBecause it is,â you hesitantly answered, fidgeting with your fingers as your nails tapped on the door.
It didnât take long for you both to be drenched and humid in the warm water of the shower, not having any hurry of getting out, steam fogging up the bathroom. You were just enjoying the closeness for now. Body against body. Your hands massaged his scalp as you washed shampoo out of it.
âSooâŚâ Logan began, dragging out the word, droplets were falling from his hair over his face. âWhat happens now?â
âRound two?â you teased, buying yourself a moment to think about the actual implication of his question.
Logan chuckled, but waited for a true answer. Round two was inevitable. He was asking something deeper.
âIâve got nothing to do and a newfound love for racing and the US,â you finally said, easy as pie. âYou should take advantage of that.â
âI think I might,â he smiled. âLife is a lot better with you close.â
You reached up to cup his cheeks, the pads of your thumbs gently rubbing over his pink cheekbones. His eyes looked onto yours, pulling you closer as his hands found the curve of your waist, the water still falling on you like an outburst of rain from a stormy sky, electricity unloading.
âWeâll be alright, I think,â you mumbled, gracefully placing a kiss on his wet lips.
Loganâs voice echoed softly in the bathroom, words leaving with an unusual certainty.
âIâm starting to think so too.â
Thank you for reading! ⥠Please comment, reblog, like or send me a messenger pigeon.
I'm calling this beast my best attempt at a fix-it fic. This was a nightmare and tumblr's paragraph limit is my mortal enemy. I had to remove like three scenes to even fit all of this which messed up the timeline like crazy. The title is from Worst Case Kid by Tommy Lefroy!